A
COMPREHENSIVE
STUDY ON
CODE OF CIVIL PROCEDURE, 1908
Dr N. Krishna Kumar
(Principal, Govt Law College, Calicut)
Adv. Manu Krishna S K
(Advocate, Thiruvananthapuram)
Varun Dev S
(Assistant Professor, Kerala Law Academy Law College)
CODE OF CIVIL PROCEDURE, 1908
The Code of Civil Procedure, 1908 (CPC) is a comprehensive piece of legislation that
governs the procedural aspects of civil litigation in India. It plays a crucial role in the
Indian legal system by providing a structured framework for the adjudication of civil
disputes in a court of law. The Code of Civil Procedure, 1908, commonly referred to
as the CPC, was enacted during British colonial rule in India. It replaced the earlier
codes of civil procedure and aimed to streamline and unify civil litigation procedures
across the country. The CPC applies to all civil suits and proceedings in India, except
those governed by specific statutes or special courts. It applies to matters such as
contract disputes, property rights, family law issues, and various other civil disputes.
The CPC lays down the rules for filing a plaint (the initial document that initiates a
civil suit) and the subsequent filing of written statements by the defendant. These
documents set out the facts, claims, and defenses of the parties involved. It defines the
jurisdiction of various courts, both territorial and pecuniary, specifying which court
has the authority to hear and decide particular types of cases.
The Code of Civil Procedure, 1908, is of immense significance as it promotes fairness,
transparency, and efficiency in civil litigation. It ensures that parties to a dispute have
the opportunity to present their cases, and it helps in the timely resolution of civil
matters, thereby contributing to the overall justice system. Over the years, the CPC has
undergone several amendments to keep pace with the changing legal landscape and
societal needs. These amendments have sought to simplify procedures, promote
alternative dispute resolution mechanisms, and expedite the disposal of cases. The
Code of Civil Procedure, 1908, is a cornerstone of the Indian legal system, guiding the
procedural aspects of civil litigation. It reflects India's commitment to a fair and just
legal framework for resolving civil disputes while providing clear guidelines for
litigants, lawyers, and judges.
There were 9 different systems of procedure in Bengal alone which were followed
simultaneously. The first uniform Code of Civil Procedure was enacted in the
year1859. The law relating to the procedure in suits and civil proceedings in India
(except those in J&K, Nagaland, tribal areas of Assam etc.) is contained in the Code
of Civil Procedure 1908.
The Code of Civil Procedure came into force with effect from Jan 1 1909. The
Code extends to the whole of India, except to the State of Jammu and Kashmir.
According to the preamble the object of the Code is to consolidate and amend laws
relating to the procedure of the courts of civil judicature. Three recent Amendment
Acts, viz, the Acts made in 1976, 1979 and 2002 have made many radical changes.
TOPIC 1
SUIT OF CIVIL NATURE
In the Code of Civil Procedure, 1908 (CPC), a "suit of a civil nature" refers to a legal
action or proceeding initiated in a civil court to resolve disputes or claims between
parties concerning civil rights and obligations. Such suits cover a wide range of civil
matters, and the CPC provides the procedural framework for their adjudication. Suits
of a civil nature in the CPC are vital for the resolution of various civil disputes and the
enforcement of civil rights and obligations. The CPC provides the procedural rules and
mechanisms to ensure that these suits are heard and decided in a fair and orderly
manner, contributing to the functioning of the justice system.
JURISDICTION
Jurisdiction may be defined to be the power or authority of a court to hear and
determine a cause to adjudicate and exercise any judicial power in relation to it.
Jurisdiction of a court means the extent of the authority of a court to administer justice
prescribed with reference to the subject matter, pecuniary value and local limits.
Jurisdiction of a court may be classified under the following categories;
1. Territorial or Local Jurisdiction
Every court has its own local or territorial limits beyond which it cannot
exercise its jurisdiction. These limits are fixed by the Govt. The District Judge has
jurisdiction to exercise within the District and not outside it. The High Court has
jurisdiction over the territory of a State within which it is situate and not beyond it. A
court has no jurisdiction to try a suit for immovable property situated beyond its local
limits.
2. Pecuniary Jurisdiction
The Code provides that a court will have jurisdiction only over those suits the
amount or value of the subject matter of which does not exceed the pecuniary limits of
its jurisdiction.
1
Some courts have unlimited pecuniary jurisdiction. The High Court and
District Courts have no pecuniary limitations. But a Small Cause Court cannot
entertain a suit in which the amount claimed exceeds Rs.1,000/-. The pecuniary
jurisdiction of the Munsiff Court is upto Rs.1,00,000/-.
3. Jurisdiction as to the Subject Matter
Different courts have been empowered to decide different types of suits. The
Munsiff court or Sub Court having jurisdiction to try suits for specific performance,
partition, foreclosure, redemption etc. In respect of testamentary matters, insolvency
proceedings, infringement of intellectual properties etc. only the District Judge has
jurisdiction.
Writ jurisdiction is vested with the High Court and Supreme Court.
Original and Appellate Jurisdiction
In the exercise of original jurisdiction, a court may entertain and decide suits
and in its appellate jurisdiction, it entertains and decides appeals. Munsiff Courts and
Small Cause Courts possess original jurisdiction only while District Court, High Court
and Supreme Court have original as well as appellate jurisdiction.
JURISDICTION OF CIVIL COURTS
1
Section 6.
(SUITS OF A CIVIL NATURE)
The jurisdiction of civil courts in India, particularly in matters of civil nature, is
primarily governed by the provisions of the Code of Civil Procedure, 1908 (CPC). The
CPC outlines the hierarchy of civil courts and their respective jurisdictions for
handling civil disputes. Let's explore the jurisdiction of civil courts for suits of a civil
nature in India under the CPC:
Hierarchy of Civil Courts:
India's civil court system is structured hierarchically, with different levels of courts
having varying jurisdictions. The hierarchy typically includes:
Subordinate Courts: Below the district level, there are various subordinate courts,
including Civil Judge (Senior Division), Civil Judge (Junior Division), and Munsiff
courts, depending on the state's nomenclature. These courts handle cases of different
monetary values.
District Courts: These are the lowest-level civil courts and have jurisdiction over
matters within the district's geographical boundaries.
High Courts: Each state in India has its High Court, which has jurisdiction over the
entire state. High Courts have original jurisdiction in certain types of cases, and they
also serve as appellate courts for cases originating in subordinate courts.
Supreme Court: The Supreme Court of India is the highest court in the country. It has
original jurisdiction in certain matters and serves as the highest appellate authority,
hearing cases from High Courts and other specialized tribunals.
Civil courts have territorial jurisdiction, which means they handle cases related to
events or parties located within their defined geographical area. The territorial
jurisdiction of a court is determined based on the location where the cause of action
arises. Civil courts also have pecuniary jurisdiction, which is the authority to hear cases
of a certain monetary value. The CPC specifies the financial limits for different
categories of courts, such as Small Causes Courts, which handle suits of lower
monetary value, and district courts, which handle suits of higher value. Civil courts
may have original jurisdiction, where they can entertain and decide cases as the first
instance, or appellate jurisdiction, where they hear appeals against judgments of lower
courts. High Courts and the Supreme Court have both original and appellate
jurisdiction, depending on the type of cases involved.
In addition to civil courts, India has specialized tribunals and forums for handling
certain specific types of disputes, such as the National Consumer Disputes Redressal
Commission (NCDRC) for consumer disputes and the Debts Recovery Tribunal
(DRT) for matters related to debt recovery. Certain disputes, such as those related to
land revenue and tenancy, family matters, and service matters, may be exclusively
within the jurisdiction of specific courts or tribunals designated by law. Understanding
the jurisdiction of civil courts is crucial for litigants to file cases in the appropriate
forum. The correct choice of jurisdiction ensures that cases are heard by the right court,
facilitating efficient and fair resolution of civil disputes.
Section 9 states that the court shall have jurisdiction to try all suits of a civil
nature, excepting suits of which their cognizance is either expressly or impliedly
barred.
Explanation I to Section 9 provides that a suit in which right to property or to
an office is contested is a suit of a civil nature.
Explanation II to Section 9 provides that it is immaterial whether or not any
fees are attached to the office referred to in explanation-I or whether or not such office
is attached to a particular place..
A civil court therefore has jurisdiction to try a suit, if two conditions are fulfilled;
1. The suit must be of a civil nature
2. The cognizance of such suit should not have been expressly or impliedly barred.
The S.C. in Shri. Vanamali Ramanuja Jeer v. Ranga Ramanuja Jeer
2
, has laid
down certain guide-lines to be followed for deciding the question as to whether a right
to a religious office would be a right of a civil nature or not.
(1) Prima facie suit raising question of religious rites and ceremonies only are not
maintainable.
(2) A suit for declaration with respect to religious honours, privileges alone will not
lie in a civil suit.
(3) The essential condition for the existence of an office is that the holder of the
alleged office should be under a legal obligation to discharge the duties attached to the
said office.
In Muhammed v. Moideen Haji
3
, the dispute was whether religious discourse
called Khutuba in a mosque in connection with Juma prayer on Friday can also be in
vernacular along with its essential ingredients in Arabic. It was held that the suit is
maintainable, since it is a matter affecting the right to worship. Similarly an
interference with the right of a Mohamadan to recite prayers over a body before burial
in front of a mosque is an invasion of a civil right, which can be enforced by a suit.
In Pappy v. Mathew Mar Koorilos
4
, it was held that if the dispute relates to the
control and management of church and its properties, the civil courts have jurisdiction
not only to entertain suits but also to mould the relief in such a way as to promote the
paramount interest of the parishiners and to reflect the will of the community.
In Mool Raj v. Gulab Singh
5
, it was held that disputes relating to the business
of the co-operative society cannot be adjudicated by civil court.
In Prakash Narain v. Burma-Shell Co-operative Housing Society Ltd
6
, the
Supreme Court held that it cannot be said that the civil court under no circumstances
can entertain a civil suit in respect of proceeding pending before Registrar, co-
operative societies.
2
1961 S.C.1720.
3
AIR 2000 Ker.329.
4
2000 (2) KLT SN 72.
5
AIR1984 NOC 26.
6
2002 (7) SCC 46.
The expression suit of a civil nature will cover private rights and obligation of
a person. Political and religious questions are not covered by the expressions ‘civil
nature’. A suit in which the principal question relates to caste, politics or religion is
not a suit of civil nature. But if the principal question in a suit is of a civil nature and
the adjudication incidentally involves, the determination relating to a caste question or
to religious rights and ceremonies, it does not ceases to be a suit of a civil nature and
the jurisdiction of a civil court is not barred.
The Following are Suits of a Civil Nature:-
1. Suits relating to right to property;
2. Suits relating to worship;
3. Suits relating to taking out religious procession;
4. Suits relating to right to share in offerings;
5. Suits for damages for civil wrongs;
6. Suits for specific performance of contract;
7. Suits for damages for breach of contract;
8. Suits for specific reliefs;
9. Suits for restitution of conjugal rights;
10. Suits for other matrimonial remedies;
11. Suits for rents;
12. Suits for right to hereditary office;
13. Suits against wrongful dismissal from service and for salaries.
The Following are Suits Not of a Civil Nature:-
1. 1. Suits involving principally caste question;
2. 2. Suits involving purely religious rights or ceremonies;
3. Suits for upholding dignity or honour;
4. Suits expressly barred;
5. Suits impliedly barred.
The jurisdiction of civil courts in India for suits of a civil nature is determined by the
CPC, and it encompasses territorial and pecuniary aspects. The hierarchical structure
of civil courts ensures that cases are heard at the appropriate level, promoting access
to justice and efficient dispute resolution.
SUITS EXPRESSLY BARRED
A suit is said to be “expressly barred”, when it is barred by any enactment for
the time being in force.
For e.g. Sec. 170 of Representation of Peoples Act, 1951, provides that no civil
court has jurisdiction to question the legality of any action taken or of any decision
given by the Returning Officer or by any other person appointed under this Act in
connection with an election.
It is open to the competent legislature to bar the jurisdiction of civil court with
respect to a particular class of suit of a civil nature. Thus matters falling within the
exclusive jurisdiction of revenue courts or under the Code of Criminal Procedure or
matters dealt with by Bar Council, Medical Council etc. and by special tribunals like
Industrial Tribunal are expressly barred from the cognizance of a civil court.
SUITS IMPLIEDLY BARRED
A suit is said to be impliedly barred when it is barred by general principles of
law. Certain suits though of civil nature are barred from the cognizance of a civil court
on the ground of public policy. Thus no suit shall lie for recovery of costs incurred in
a criminal prosecution or for enforcement of a right upon a contract hit by Section 23
of Indian Contract Act, 1872.
Even when the jurisdiction of a civil court is barred either expressly or by
necessary implication, it cannot be said that the jurisdiction is altogether excluded. A
court has jurisdiction to examine whether the provisions of the Act and Rules made
thereunder have been complied with or the order is contrary to law, malafide,
ultravires, arbitrary, violative of the principles of natural justice and so on.
7
7
Krishnan Lal v. State of J&K, (1994) 4 SCC 422.
TOPIC 3
RES SUBJUDICE (Section 10)
Section 10 of the Code of Civil Procedure, 1908 (CPC), deals with the principle of "res
sub judice," which is a Latin term that translates to "a matter under judgment" in
English. This legal principle serves to prevent the simultaneous and multiple
adjudication of the same dispute in multiple forums
Section 10 deals with stay of suit. It provides that no court shall proceed with
the trial of any suit in which the matter in issue is also directly and substantially in
issue in a previously instituted suit between the same parties and the court in which the
previous suit is pending is competent to grant the relief claimed.
The object of rule contained in Section 10 is to prevent courts of concurrent
jurisdiction from simultaneously adjudicating upon two parallel litigations in respect
of the same cause of action. The policy of law is to confine a plaintiff to one litigation
and thus preventing the possibility of two contradicting verdicts by one and the same
court in respect of the same reliefs.
8
The Section intends to protect a person from the multiplicity of proceedings and
to avoid a conflict of decision. Section 10 reads: “No court shall proceed with the trial
of any suit in which the matter in issue is also directly and substantially in issue in a
previously instituted suit between the same parties, or between parties under whom
they or any of them claim litigating under the same title, where such suit is pending in
the same or any other court in India having jurisdiction to grant the relief claimed, or
in any court beyond the limits of India established or continued by the Central Govt.
and having like jurisdiction or before the Supreme Court.
Conditions
For the application of this section, the following conditions must be satisfied:
1. There must be two suits, one previously instituted and the other subsequently
instituted.
2. The matter in the subsequent suit must be directly and substantially in issue in
the previous suit.
8
Balakrishna v. Kishanlal, 1889 ILR 11, All.148.
3. Both the suit must be between the same parties or their representatives.
4. The previously instituted suit must be pending in the same court or any other
court having jurisdiction.
5. The parties must be litigating under the same title in both suits.
If the above conditions are satisfied a court cannot proceed with the
subsequently instituted suit since the provisions contained in section 10 are mandatory,
no discretion is left with the court.
9
The order of staying proceedings in the subsequent
suit can be made at any stage.
10
Explanation to Section 10 provides that there is no bar on the power of an Indian
court to try a subsequently instituted suit, if the previously instituted suit is pending in
a Foreign Court. Even then a civil court has inherent power under S. 151 to stay such
a suit to achieve the ends of justice.
In Pukhraj D. Jain v. Gopalakrishna
11
, it was held that where subsequently
instituted suit can be decided on purely legal points without taking evidence, it is open
to the Court to decide the relevant issues and not to keep the suit pending which has
been instituted with an oblique motive.
In Kora Chacko v. Mathew
12
, it was held that power under S.151 cannot be
invoked for stay of subsequent suit.
In Devassi Alias J.D. Mooken v.Anthoni
13
, it was held that a stay of suit under
S.10 does not amount to a consolidation of that suit with the previously instituted suit
which might after all be pending in another court, so as to make the decree therein a
decree in the stayed suit. It is for the parties to take the plea of res judicata after the
disposal of the earlier suit has resulted in the stay being dissolved and obtain an
adjudication thereon.
9
Manohar Lal v. Seth Hiralal, AIR 1962, SC 527.
10
Life Pharmaceuticals (P) Ltd. v. Bengal Medical Hall, AIR 1971Cal.345.
11
2004 (3) KLT SN 36.
12
1995 (2) KLJ 616.
13
AIR 1969 KER.78.
In V.R. Balakrishnan v. R. Velayudhan
14
, it was held that by stay only trial of
suit is prohibited. Other matters may be proceeded with.
In Indian Bank v. Maharashtra State Co-op. Marketing Federation Ltd
15
, it was
held that bar under S.10 is to be allowed to proceed with trial of subsequent suit but it
is not a bar to institute suit and passing of interlocutory orders such as consolidation
of latter with earlier suit, appointment of receiver, injunction or attachment before
judgment. Summary suit under O.37, where trial begins only after leave granted to
defendant, can proceed up to the stage of hearing summons and passing judgment in
favour of plaintiff, if the defendant not prays for leave or leave refused or fails to
comply with conditions of leave.
Section 10 of the CPC empowers a court to stay the proceedings of a suit when it is
satisfied that another suit involving the same parties and the same subject matter is
pending in another court. In other words, if there are two separate legal proceedings
addressing the same dispute, one of them may be stayed or put on hold to avoid
conflicting judgments and legal chaos. Section 10 applies when two conditions are
met:The parties in both suits are the same or are substantially the same. The subject
matter or the issues involved in both suits are identical or substantially identical. If a
court is satisfied that these conditions are met, it has the discretion to stay the
proceedings of the suit before it until the other suit, which was filed earlier, is decided.
The idea is to avoid conflicting judgments and prevent parties from pursuing multiple
remedies for the same dispute simultaneously. Once the earlier suit is decided, the
court can resume the proceedings of the stayed suit, taking into account the judgment
and outcome of the earlier suit.
Section 10 CPC is significant because it ensures the efficiency of the legal system by
preventing duplication and conflicting decisions in cases involving the same parties
and subject matter. It promotes judicial economy and helps in the orderly resolution of
disputes. While Section 10 is generally straightforward, there can be exceptions and
14
AIR 1980 KER.161.
15
AIR 1998 SC 1952.
complexities in its application. For example, if the second suit involves additional
parties or distinct issues that are not covered in the first suit, the principle of res sub
judice may not apply. Additionally, if the court where the second suit is pending is
considered a more appropriate forum for the resolution of the dispute, it may proceed
with the case despite the existence of the first suit. Section 10 of the CPC, known as
the principle of res sub judice, allows a court to stay the proceedings of a suit when
there is another suit involving the same parties and the same subject matter pending in
another court. This principle aims to prevent conflicting judgments and promote
judicial efficiency by ensuring that a single dispute is resolved in a coherent and
orderly manner.
TOPIC 4
RES JUDICATA (Section 11)
The principle of "Res Judicata" is a fundamental legal concept that is embodied in
Section 11 of the Code of Civil Procedure, 1908 (CPC). Res Judicata is a Latin term
that translates to "a matter judged" in English. It essentially means that a matter that
has already been adjudicated by a competent court cannot be re-agitated between the
same parties in subsequent litigation.
Section 11 of the Code embodies the doctrine of Res judicata. This section
provides that once a matter is finally decided by a competent court, no party can be
permitted to re-open it in a subsequent litigation. In the absence of such a rule, there
will be no end to litigation and the parties would be put to constant trouble, harassment
and expenses.
The principle of res judicata is based on the need of giving finality to the
decisions. Primarily it applies as between past litigation and future litigation.
Section 11 reads;
“No court shall try any suit or issue in which the matter directly and substantially
in issue has been directly and substantially in issue in a former suit between the same
parties, or between the parties under whom they or any of them claim, litigating under
the same title, in a court competent to try such subsequent suit or the suit in which such
issue has been subsequently raised, and has been heard and finally decided by such
court.
For the application of section 11, the following conditions must be satisfied;-
1. The matter directly and substantially in issue are same in the former suit
and subsequent suit.
2. The parties must be same in both the suits
3. Suit must have been litigating under the same title.
4. The court which decided the former suit must be a court competent to try the
subsequent suit.
5. The matter in issue must have been heard and finally decided by the court in
the former suit (i.e. Decided on merit)
The doctrine of Res judicata is based on three maxims:
1. Nemo Debet Bis VexariPro Uno Et Eadam Causa
No Man shall be vexed twice for the same cause.
2. Interest Republicae Ut sit Finis Litium
It is in the interest of the State that there should be an end to a litigation.
3. Res judicata Pro Veritate Occipitur
A judicial decision must be accepted as correct.
Res judicata and Res Sub judice
The doctrine of Res judicata differs from Res Subjudice in two aspects:
1. Res judicata applies to a matter adjudicated upon. But Res Subjudice applies to
a matter pending trial.
2. Res judicata bars the trial of a suit or an issue which has been decided in the
former suit and Res Subjudice stays the trial of a suit which is pending decision
in a previously instituted suit.
Res judicata and Estoppel
Estoppel is defined in Section 115 of Indian Evidence Act, 1872. It reads:
Where one person has by his declaration, act or omission, intentionally caused or
permitted another person to believe a thing to be true and to act upon such belief,
neither he nor his representatives shall be allowed to deny the truth of that thing”.
Res-judicata is a rule of procedure and estoppel is the rule of evidence. Res-
judicata prevents a party to agitate a matter again. Estoppel prevents a party from
denying earlier representation.
Res-judicata prevents multiplicity of suit. Estoppel prevents multiplicity of
representation.
Res judicata ousts the jurisdiction of the courts. Estoppel shuts the mouth of the
parties.
Compromise Decree and Res-judicata
A compromise decree is not a decision by court. It is the acceptance by the court
of something which the parties had agreed. Here the court does not decide anything.
In Sundar Bai v. Devaji
16
, it was held that the doctrine of Res-judicata does not
apply to a consent decree, as in a consent decree a matter cannot be said to be heard
and finally decided on merits. But such a decree however does not prevent a party
from challenging it by a rule of estoppel.
Res judicata and Withdrawal of Suit
A withdrawal of a suit does not operate as Res judicata in filing a subsequent
suit for the same cause of action. The basic principles of Res judicata being final
adjudication on merits, there can be no bar of Res judicata if the suit is withdrawn. But
withdrawal would be a bar to the filing of a fresh suit under Order XXIII Rule 1.
Constructive Res judicata
Explanation IV to Section 11 deals with Constructive Res judicata. It provides
that any matter which might and ought to have been made ground of defence or attack
16
AIR 1954 SC 82.
in such former suit shall be deemed to have been a matter directly and substantially in
issue in such suit.
The principle underlying the doctrine of constructive res judicata is to compel
the plaintiff or defendant to take all the grounds of attack defence which were open to
him. In other words all the grounds of attack and defence must be taken in the suit.
In Barangal S. Ruia v. Shashikant N. Ruia
17
, an appeal was filed by one of
several defendants. Subsequently co-defendant filed another appeal. It dismissed for
default. It was held that an order dismissing a subsequent appeal for default cannot
operate as res judicata in respect of an earlier appeal.
In Premier Tyres v. KSRT Corporation
18
, A filed a suit against B. B filed a suit
against A. Issues were common. Both the suits were tried together. Appeal was
preferred against one. No appeal against the judgment and decree of the connected suit
was filed. So it was held that the finality of finding record in the connected suit due to
non-filing of appeal precluded from proceeding with the appeal in other suit.
TOPIC 5
PLACE OF SUING (Sections 15-21)
The "Place of Suing" provisions, as outlined in Sections 15 to 21 of the Code of Civil
Procedure (CPC) in India, are crucial for determining the appropriate jurisdiction
where a civil suit should be filed. These sections help in avoiding forum shopping and
ensure that cases are filed in the most convenient and legally appropriate courts.
Sections 15 of the Code of Civil Procedure, 1908 regulate the forum for the
institution of suits. This section specifies that a suit should generally be instituted in
the court within whose jurisdiction the defendant resides or carries on business, or
where the cause of action arises. It provides for multiple options as to where a suit can
be filed.
17
AIR 2004 SC 2546.
18
1992 Supp (2) SCC 146.
Section 15 provides that every suit shall be instituted in the court of the lowest
grade competent to try it. This section refers to the pecuniary jurisdiction of the court.
It lays down a rule of procedure and does not affect the jurisdiction of the court. Hence
a decree passed by a court of higher grade cannot be said to be without jurisdiction.
The object of Section 15 is to see that the courts of higher grade shall not be over
burdened with suits.
Section 16 to 18 deal with suits relating to immovable property. clauses (a) to
(e) of section 16 deal with the following 5 kinds of suits:
a) Suits for recovery of immovable property;
b) Suits for partition of immovable property;
c) Suits for foreclosure, sale or redemption in case of mortgage or charge upon
immovable property;
d) Suit for determination of any other right to or interest in immovable property;
e) Suit for compensation for wrong to immovable property.
These suits must be filed in the court within the local limits of whose
jurisdiction the property is situate. In cases involving immovable property, the suit
should be instituted in the court within whose local jurisdiction the property is situated.
Section 17 of the Code provides that where a suit is to obtain relief respecting,
or compensation for wrong to, immovable property situate within jurisdiction of
different courts, such suit can be filed in the court within the local limits of whose
jurisdiction any portion of the property is situate. The only condition is that the suit is
within the pecuniary jurisdiction of such court. When a suit is for compensation for
wrong done to a person or for moveable property, it may be instituted either where the
cause of action arises or where the defendant resides or carries on business.
Section 18 deals with cases where it is uncertain within the jurisdiction of
which of two or more courts any immovable property is situate. In such cases any of
those courts is having the jurisdiction to try such case. If there are multiple defendants
residing in different jurisdictions, the plaintiff may choose to file the suit in a court
within the local limits of whose jurisdiction any one of them resides.
Section 19 deals with the suits for compensation for wrong (Tort) to person or
movables. A suit for wrong to movable property or for compensation for wrong to
person, may be instituted at the option of the plaintiff either at the place where the
wrong is committed or where the defendant resides, carries on business or personally
works for gain. In suits against joint tortfeasors, the suit can be filed in a court within
the local limits of whose jurisdiction any one of the defendants resides.
Section 20 deals with all other cases not covered by any of the foregoing
provisions. All such suits may be filed at the plaintiff’s option in any of the following
courts:
1. where the cause of action arises;
2. where the defendants resides or carries on business or personally works for gain;
3. where there are two or more defendants, any of them resides or carries on business
or personally works for gain.
This section provides for exceptions to the general rule. It allows suits to be filed where
the parties agree or in cases involving contracts, where the performance was to be
made.
Cause of Action
‘Action’ means suit. ‘Cause of action’ means literally the cause or the set of
circumstances which leads up to a suit. It refers to a bundle of essential facts which a
party has to prove in order to get a relief in his favour. The expression Cause of
Action’ as used in CPC means every fact which is necessary for the plaintiff to prove
in order to get a decree in his favour.
Cause of action means the necessary conditions for the maintenance of a suit.
It discloses the reasons for the suit. It does not comprise every piece of evidence. It is
a bundle of essential facts necessary for the plaintiff to prove, before he can succeed
in the suit.
Cause of action is antecedent to the filing of the suit and every plaint must
disclose a cause of action. It supports the plaintiff’s title.
In a suit by Hindu wife for maintenance, marriage constitutes a part of the cause
of action and the suit lies to the court within whose jurisdiction the marriage was held.
In a case of payment of cheque cause of action arises at the place where the cheque
was delivered.
If A brings a suit against B for damages for a libel upon him, A must prove the
following three facts namely:
1. That the writing complained of was published by the defendant.
2. That it is untrue and
3. That it is defamatory to A.
These three facts constitute A’s cause of action, and they must all be alleged in his
plaint.
In Hanil Era Textiles Ltd. v. Puromatic Filters (p) Ltd.
19
, appellant was residing
in Bombay and the respondent in Delhi. Appellant placed purchase order on the branch
of the respondent in Bombay for supply of goods which are to be delivered at
Patalganga factory of the appellant. An advance payment of 30% of the value of the
goods was paid by the appellant to the respondent in Bombay. Terms and conditions
of the purchase order conferred jurisdiction on Bombay courts. Respondent filed a suit
for recovery of the balance 70% against the appellant in Delhi court. The Trial court
admitted the suit and rejected the contention of the appellant that only courts in
Bombay have jurisdiction. The first appeal of the appellant to the High court was also
dismissed and upon such dismissal the appellant appealed to the Supreme Court.
Appeal was allowed.
In Harshad Chimanlal Modi v. DLF Universal Ltd. &Another
20
, a contract was
entered in to in Delhi. On the basis of the contract payment was also made in Delhi. In
the contract the jurisdiction was also conferred on Delhi courts. However the suit
property was situated in Gurgaon. Suit for specific performance was filed in Delhi.
Parties did not object to jurisdiction. The trial court returned the plaint for want of
19
JT 2004 (Supp.1).
20
JT 2000 (8) SC 561.
jurisdiction. High Court confirmed the same. The Supreme Court upheld the view of
the lower Courts.
In National Textile Corpn. Ltd. and Others v. Haribox Swalram and Others
21
, it
was held that facts giving rise to Court’s territorial jurisdiction are only those facts
give rise to a cause of action within a Court’s territorial jurisdiction which have a nexus
or relevance with the lis that is involved in the case, not otherwise.
In Stridewell v. Bhanlepur Simbhaoli
22
, it was held that an appeal against the
order of the Company Law Board located at Delhi will be in Madras High Court within
whose jurisdiction the registered office of the company is located.
In Angile v. Davy Ashmore
23
, it was held that if two Courts have jurisdiction
consequent upon a part of cause of action arising thereunder parties by a valid, explicit,
clear and unambiguous contract vest jurisdiction in one to the exclusion of another.
The other Court will have thereby no jurisdiction although part of cause of action arose
there.
In Femina v. M.R. Verma
24
, the purchaser from Bombay placed order for goods
with a seller. The seller delivered the goods to a common carrier at Kannur for carriage
and delivery at Bombay. It was held that suit for recovery of price of goods can be
filed at Kannur.
Claim for Compensation
In Vasanthy G. Kammath and Others v. KSRTC
25
, there was a claim for
compensation resulting in death due to accident, by dependents of deceased. It was
21
2004 (9) SCC 786: AIR 2004 SC 1998.
22
AIR 1994 SC 158.
23
1995 (4) SCC 153.
24
AIR 1993 Ker.210.
25
1981 KLT 200.
held that Courts within whose jurisdiction either death occurred or accident occurred
have jurisdiction to entertain it.
Concurrent jurisdiction: Exclusion of one
In Shriram City Union v. Rama Mishra
26
, of the two Courts of competent
jurisdiction parties by agreement have chosen one for adjudication of their dispute. It
was held that they cannot choose a different Court in violation of the agreement.
Objections to Jurisdiction-
Section 21 deals with objections to jurisdiction. This section emphasizes that
if an objection to the jurisdiction of a court is not raised at the earliest possible
opportunity in the proceedings, it is considered waived.
No objection as to the place of suing shall be allowed by any appellate or revisional
court unless the following 3 conditions are fulfilled:
1. The objection was taken in the court of first instance;
2. It was taken at the earliest possible opportunity;
3. There has been a consequent failure of justice.
All these 3 conditions must co-exist.
In R.S.D.V. Finance v. Shree Vallabh Glass Worls
27
, it was held that objection
as to jurisdiction cannot be entertained in the Court of appeal unless the third condition,
viz. failure of justice is satisfied although other two conditions are satisfied.
In Kamalakshi Amma v. Karthyayani Amma
28
, the defendant did not raise a
contention in the lower Court. No prejudice also caused. It was held that review
petition filed under O.41 R.1 is not maintainable as there is waiver of the contention
of jurisdiction.
26
AIR 2002 SC 2402.
27
AIR 1993 SC 2094.
28
2001 (3) KLT SN 137.
Bar on suit to Set Aside Decree
S. 21A of the Code provides that a suit shall not lie to challenge the validity of
a decree passed in a former suit between the same parties on any ground based on an
objection as to the place of suing. Thus decree passed by a court cannot be challenged
in a subsequent suit on the ground that the court which passed the decree has territorial
jurisdiction. However this section does not bar a suit challenging the validity of a
decree passed by a court without pecuniary jurisdiction.
In Thiruvenkitan v. Anantha Kumar
29
, it was held that the well accepted
principle of law is that a transfer of a suit is effected by the Court for proper and
convincing grounds. No Court would transfer the decree for mere asking of a party.
Merely because plaintiff has instituted his suit in a Court of his choice the Court cannot
be obvious of the inconveniences and difficulties of the defendants.
These provisions in the CPC are designed to ensure that the plaintiff selects an
appropriate forum for filing the suit, and they are aimed at preventing unnecessary
delay and inconvenience to the parties involved. They help in determining the most
suitable court to adjudicate the matter, considering factors like residence of parties,
location of property, and the place where the cause of action arises. However, it's
essential to consult legal counsel to fully understand and apply these provisions
correctly in a specific case, as there may be exceptions and nuances in their application.
TOPIC 6
TRANSFER OF SUITS (Sections 22-25)
The provisions regarding the transfer of suits in the Code of Civil Procedure (CPC) are
outlined in Sections 22 to 25. These sections deal with the circumstances under which
29
1991 (1) KLT SN 24: ILR 1991 (1) Ker.565.
a suit can be transferred from one court to another. The objective is to ensure justice,
convenience, and fairness in the adjudication of cases.
Sections 22 to 25 deal with transfer of suits from one court to another. When a
suit may be instituted in more than one court the option lies with the plaintiff to select
the forum as provided in Sec.16 and 20. Then a defendant can apply for transfer of the
case to another court under Sec.22. It is to be done after notice to the other parties. But
it must be done at the earliest possible opportunity. Where issues are settled the
application for transfer shall be at or before such settlement of issues. The court shall
make a decision after considering the objections of the other parties. Section 22
empowers the court to transfer a suit, which might have been filed in more than one
court having jurisdiction, to a different court. The transfer can be ordered for reasons
such as the convenience of the parties or the witnesses.
Section 23 provides for the court to which the application is to be made. When
the different courts are under the same appellate court the application is to be made to
the appellate court. When they are subordinate to different appellate courts but to the
same High Court, it shall be made to the High Court. When they are subordinate to
different High Courts, the application shall be made to the High Court within whose
jurisdiction the court in which the suit is brought is situate. Section 23 states that an
application for the transfer of a suit can be made either to the court where the suit is
originally instituted or to the High Court if the suit is within its jurisdiction.
General Power of Transfer
Section 24 provides for a transfer by any of the parties to a suit, appeal or other
proceeding. The power is conferred upon a High Court or a District Court. It may be
done at any stage. The power under Sec.24 also envisages a retransfer of the suit for
trial or disposal to the court from which the same was withdrawn.
30
For the purpose of
the section “proceedingincludes a proceeding for the execution of a decree or order.
31
It has been held that the power under this section can be exercised suo moto by the
30
S.24 (1) (b) (iii).
31
S.24 (3) (b).
court without any application. This section grants the Supreme Court the authority to
transfer any suit, appeal, or other proceeding from one High Court to another or from
a subordinate court in one state to a subordinate court in another state. This provision
ensures uniformity and the avoidance of conflicting judgments.
Factors to be Considered
As a general rule, the court shall consider whether the expenses and difficulties
of the trial would be so great as to lead to injustice. An order can also be made in order
to prevent abuse of the process of court. The burden lies on the applicant to make out
a strong case in favour of transfer.
Power of the Supreme Court
Section 25 as amended by Amendment Act, 1976 confers on the Supreme Court
the power to transfer a pending suit, appeal or proceeding from one High Court or Civil
Court in a state to a High Court or other Civil Court in another State. Formerly the
power was within the State Government. Now wider powers are conferred on the
Supreme Court. Section 25 vests the court with the general power to transfer any suit,
appeal, or proceeding from one court to another. The court's discretion to transfer suits
under this section can be exercised for various reasons, including the interests of
justice, the convenience of the parties, or to prevent abuse of the process of law.
The Supreme Court is to be satisfied that the order is required to meet the ends
of justice. An application under this section is to be supported by an affidavit.
These provisions under Sections 22 to 25 of the CPC are essential to maintain the
fairness and efficiency of the judicial process. They allow for the transfer of suits when
it is in the interest of justice or when it would serve the convenience of the parties
involved. Whether it's a case of multiple courts having jurisdiction, a need for a change
of venue, or an issue of national importance, these sections empower the courts,
including the Supreme Court, to ensure that cases are heard in the most suitable forum,
thus promoting the administration of justice in India.
TOPIC 7
PLAINT (Section 26, Order VII)
The term "plaint" in the context of the Code of Civil Procedure (CPC) refers to the
formal written statement of a plaintiff's claim or the document that initiates a civil
lawsuit. It provides essential details about the claim, including the nature of the claim,
the relief sought, and the facts and circumstances on which the claim is based. In the
CPC, the provisions related to the plaintiff's plaint are primarily found in Section 26
and Order VII.
Section 26 of the Code of Civil Procedure, 1908 deals with institution of suit.
Section 26(1) states that every suit shall be instituted by the presentation of plaint or
in such other manner as may be prescribed. Section 26 (2)
32
provides that in every
plaint, facts shall be proved by affidavit.
In J.V.V. Sangh v. Shyam Sunder
33
and in Kuntibi v. L.A.O.
34
, it was held that the
suit ordinarily means a civil suit instituted by the presentation of a plaint.
In Varghese v. Sebastian
35
, it was held that institution of a suit in a court not
competent to try is invalid.
Order VII deals with the contents of plaint. Rule 1 states that the plaint shall
contain the following particulars:
a. The name of the Court in which the suit is brought;
b. The name, description and place of residence of the plaintiff;
c. The name, description and place of residence of the defendant, so far as
they can be ascertained;
d. Where the plaintiff or defendant is a minor or a person is of unsound
mind, a statement to that effect;
e. The facts constituting the cause of action and when it arose;
f. The facts showing that the Court has jurisdiction;
32
Inserted by Amendment Act 1999.
33
AIR 1970 Raj.91.
34
AIR 1962 Ker.266.
35
AIR 1982 NOC 61 (Ker).
g. The relief which the plaintiff claims;
h. Where the plaintiff has allowed a set-off or relinquished a portion of his
claims, the amount so allowed or relinquished; and
i. A statement of the value of the subject matter of the suit for the purpose
of jurisdiction and court fee.
Cause Title
The name of the court, space for writing the number and year of the suit and the
names and description of the parties constitute what is generally called cause title.
Body of the Plaint
The plaintiff must give all the material particulars in order to ascertain whether
in fact or in law the cause of action arising from the plaint as is alleged exists.
In Bhagwati v. Chandramauli
36
, it was states that plaint shall contain particulars
of the facts constituting the cause of action and when it arose in order to enable the
Court to determine whether plaint discloses any cause of action and whether suit is
barred by limitation.
In Kuldeep Singh v. Ganpat Lal
37
, the plaint shall contain particulars of the facts
constituting the cause of action and when it arose in order to enable the court to
determine whether plaint discloses any cause of action and whether suit is barred by
limitation.
The subject matter of the suit shall be brought out in precise and concise
paragraphs. They shall be serially numbered. The date on which the cause of action
arose is essential to verify whether the suit is within the prescribed period of limitation.
Where the suit is instituted after the expiry of the period prescribed by the law of
limitation, the plaint shall show the ground upon which the exemption from such law
36
AIR 1966 SC 735.
37
1966 (1) SCC 243.
is claimed. There should also be a clear statement of facts showing jurisdiction of the
Court to have cognizance of the case. The plaint must state all the facts showing how
the court has jurisdiction.
The body itself may refer to the valuation of the suit on the basis of the relief(s)
claimed. This is essential for the purpose of the Court Fee and Suit Valuation Act. In
deciding the limits of pecuniary jurisdiction also this will be helpful.
Any plaint to be filed shall be in duplicate and shall be accompanied by all
documents on which the plaintiff relies in support of his claim. It is also to be supported
by an affividavit stating the genuineness of the claims and of documents relied upon.
Prayer for Relief
The relief(s) claimed shall be specifically stated. Alternative claims for relief
may also be pleaded. However general or other reliefs may be granted by the court.
However, in general, a plaintiff cannot be entitled to relief upon facts or documents
not stated or referred to by him in his pleadings. But in certain exceptional situations
the court may grant a relief though it may not be founded on the pleadings.
Valuation statement is to be given in details showing the remittance of court
fees.
Signature
Every pleading is to be signed by the party and his pleader, if any. If the party is
unable to sign the pleading, the same may be signed by a person duly authorized by
him to sign the same or to sue or defend on his behalf. Omission to sign is a matter of
procedure. The court may allow the plaintiff to amend the plaint by signing the same.
Verification
Every pleading is to be verified at the foot of the pleading by the party or one
of the parties pleading. The verification shall be signed by the person making it and
shall state the date on which and the place at which it was signed. Omission to verify
the pleading will not cause a plaint to be rejected. An order can be made for its
amendment.
Schedule/List of Documents
In suits relating to property there will normally be a schedule showing the
description of the property. There may generally be the list of documents relied upon
the plaintiff as appended to a plaint.
O.VII R.14 deals production of document on which plaintiff sues or relies:
Where a plaintiff sues upon a document or relies upon document in his
possession or power in support of his claim, he shall enter such documents in a list,
and shall produce it in Court when the plaint is presented by him and shall, at the same
time deliver the document and a copy thereof, to be filed with the plaint. Where any
such document is not in the possession or power of the plaintiff, he shall, wherever
possible, state in whose possession or power it is.
A document which ought to be produced in Court by the plaintiff when the plaint
is presented, or to be entered in the list to be added or annexed to the plaint but is not
produced or entered accordingly, shall not, without the leave of the Court, be received
in evidence on his behalf at the hearing of the suit. Nothing in this rule shall apply
to documents produced for the cross examination of the plaintiff’s witnesses, or,
handed over to a witness merely to refresh his memory.
Order VII, Rule 3 states that, where the subject matter of the suit is immovable
property, the plaint shall contain a description of the property sufficient to identify it.
Rule 4 provides that, where the plaintiff sues in a representative character, the
plaint shall show a statement to that effect.
Rule 6 provides that where the suit is instituted, after the expiration of the period
prescribed by the law of limitation, the plaint shall show the ground upon which
exemption from such law is claimed.
Order VII Rule 9 provides that where the Court orders that where the summons
be served on the defendants in the manner provided in Order V Rule 9, it will direct
the plaintiff to present as many copies of the plaint on the plain paper as there are
defendants within seven days from the date of such order along with requisite fee for
service of summons on the defendants.
RETURN OF PLAINT (Order VII, Rule 10)
The plaint shall at any stage of the suit be returned to be presented to the proper
court in which the suit should have been instituted.
38
On returning a paint, the Judge
shall endorse thereon the date of its presentation and written the name of the party
presenting it, a brief statement of the reasons for returning it.
39
Return of the plaint is deemed to be a decree and is appealable. Under Rule
10B(1) of Order VII, where on an appeal against order for return of plaint, the court
hearing the appeal may if the plaintiff by an application so desires direct the plaintiff
to file the plaint in the court in which the suit should have been instituted and fix a date
for the appearance of the party.
Order VII Rule 10B (2) says that the direction made by the Court under sub-rule
1 shall be without any prejudice to the rights of any parties to question the jurisdiction
of the Court, in which the plaint is filed, to try the suit.
REJECTION OF PLAINT (Order VII Rule 11)
The plaint shall be rejected in the following cases;
a. where it does not disclose a cause of action;
b. where the relief claimed is under valued and the same is not corrected
within the time fixed;
c. where the plaint is returned upon insufficiently stamped and the plaintiff
failed to supply the requisite stamp paper within the time fixed by the court;
d. where the suit appears from the statement in the plaint to be barred by
any law;
38
Order VII, Rule 10 (1).
39
Order VII, Rule 10 (2).
e. where it is not filed in duplicate;
f. where the plaintiff fails to comply with the provisions of R. 9.
Proviso to Order VII Rule 11 CPC states that the time fixed by the Court for the
correction of the valuation or supplying of the requisite stamp paper shall not be
extended unless the Court, for reasons to be recorded, is satisfied that the plaintiff was
prevented by any cause of an exceptional nature for correcting the valuation or
supplying the requisite stamp paper as the case may be within the time fixed by the
Court and that refusal to extend such time would cause grave injustice to the plaintiff.
By virtue of S. 2(2) of the Code, rejection of a plaint shall be deemed to be a
decree. The result is that an order rejecting the plaint is appealable as if it is a decree
under Section 96, Order XI, CPC.
The rejection of a plaint on any of the grounds mentioned above shall not of its
own force preclude the plaintiff from presenting a fresh plaint in respect of the same
cause of action.
40
Thus a fresh suit can be instituted provided it is not barred by
limitation.
In Mohan v. Damodaran
41
, it was held that a reasonable cause of action is said
to mean a cause of action with some chances of success when only the allegations in
the pleadings are considered. The failure of the pleadings to disclose a reasonable cause
of action is distinct from the absence of full particulars.
In Mable v. Dolores
42
, it was held that if inherent powers cannot be invoked
against order rejecting plaint the remedy lies in filing an appeal.
In ABN-AMRAO Bank v. Punjab Urban P&D Authority
43
, it was held that partial
rejection of plaint is not permissible.
40
Order VII, Rule 13.
41
1994 (2) SCC 392.
42
AIR 2001 KER. 353.
43
AIR 2000 P&H 44.
In Raptakos Brett & Co. Ltd. v. Ganesh Property
44
, it was held that basis of
cause of action alleged in suit could be gathered on a conjoined reading of all
paragraphs of plaint.
In I.T.C. Ltd. v. Debts Recovery Appellate Tribunal
45
,it was held that where mere
non-supply of goods does not amount to fraud, mere repetition of the word ‘fraud’ in
plaint not sufficient to disclose cause of action.
In Delhi Wakf Board v. J.K. Narang
46
, it was held that subsequent suit on same
cause of action not barred where earlier plaint is rejected under Rule 11.
The provisions in Section 26 and Order VII of the CPC are critical because they ensure
that the plaintiff provides a clear and comprehensive statement of their claim, enabling
the defendant and the court to understand the nature of the dispute. Additionally, the
rules on the form and content of the plaint help in preventing frivolous or vague claims
and contribute to the efficient functioning of the civil justice system in India. It is
essential for plaintiffs and their legal representatives to adhere to the requirements
outlined in Section 26 and Order VII when drafting and filing a plaint to ensure that
their claim is properly presented before the court. Failure to comply with these
provisions may lead to the rejection of the plaint, which could delay the legal
proceedings.
TOPIC 8
PARTIES TO THE SUIT (Order I Rule 1)
Order I, Rule 1 of the Code of Civil Procedure (CPC) in India deals with the parties to
a suit. It lays down the general rule regarding who can be joined as plaintiffs and
defendants in a civil lawsuit. Order I deals with parties to the suit, joinder of parties,
mis-joinder and non-joinder of parties.
44
1998 (7) SCC 184.
45
1998 (2) SCC 70.
46
1997 (10) SCC 192.
Order I, Rule 1 - Joinder of Plaintiffs and Defendants: The rule states: "All persons
may be joined as plaintiffs in whom any right to relief in respect of or arising out of
the same act or transaction or series of acts or transactions is alleged to exist, whether
jointly, severally or in the alternative, where, if such persons brought separate suits,
any common question of law or fact would arise."
Joinder of Parties
The question of joinder of parties may arise either as regards the plaintiffs or
as regards the defendants. An act may be done by a single individual and may adversely
affect another individual. In that case, the question of joinder of parties does not arise
at all.
Illustration: Where ‘A’ assaults ‘B’, then B may sue A for tort.
The question of joinder of parties arises when an act is done by two or more
persons or it affects two or more persons.
Illustration: If ‘A’ assaults ‘B’ and ‘C’ or B and C assaults A, the question of joinder
of plaintiffs or defendants arises.
Joinder of Plaintiffs (Order I, Rule 1)
All persons may be joined in one suit as plaintiffs, if the following two
conditions are satisfied:
1. The right to relief arises out of the same act or transaction;
2. The case is of such a character that if such person brought separate suits, the
common questions of law or fact would arise.
Illustration
‘A’ enters into an agreement jointly with ‘B’ and ‘C’ to sell 100 tins of oil. A
thereafter refused to deliver the goods. Here both B and C have each of them a right
to recover damages from A. The said right arises out of the same transaction and a
common question of law and fact would also arise. B and C therefore may file a suit
jointly as plaintiff against A for damages.
In Mohammed Farooq v. District Judge, Allahabad
47
, it was held that where
there was no allegation or any cause of action against the applicant who sought to be
impleaded as defendant in the suit, the mere apprehension that the plaintiff and
defendants of the suit might collusively get their suit decided which would adversely
affect the right of the applicant was not enough for impleadment of the applicant as
defendant in the suit.
Joinder of Defendants (Order I Rule 3)
All persons may be joined in one suit as defendants if the following two
conditions are fulfilled:
1. The right to relief alleged to exist against them arises out of the same act or
transaction;
2. The case is of such a character that if separate suits when brought against such
persons, any common question of law or fact would arise.
Illustration
There is a collision between a bus and a car. The bus belongs to B and the car
belongs to C. As a result of the collision, A, a passer-by is injured. A may join B and
C as defendants in one suit for damages since the case involves common question of
fact arising out of the same transaction.
Order I Rule 3A provides that where it appears to the court that any joinder of
defendants may embarrass or delay the trial of the suit, it may pass an order for separate
trials.
Order I, Rule 7 provides that where the plaintiff is in doubt as to the person
from whom he is entitled to obtain redress, he may join two or more defendants in one
suit.
Necessary and Proper Party
47
AIR 1993 All 8.
There is an essential distinction between a necessary party and a proper party
to a suit. A necessary party is one, whose presence is indispensable to the constitution
of the suit and without whom no effective order can be passed.
A proper party is one in whose absence, an effective order can be passed, but
whose presence is necessary for a complete and final decision of a question involved
in the proceedings. His presence however enables the court to adjudicate more
effectively and completely.
Thus in a suit for partition all sharers are necessary parties. A sub-tenant is
only a proper party in a suit for possession by a landlord against his tenant. A local
authority for whose benefit the land is sought to be acquired by the Govt. is a proper
party in land acquisition proceedings.
Non-Joinder and Mis-Joinder of Parties (Order I Rule 9)
Where a person, who is a necessary or proper party to a suit has not been joined
as a party to the suit, it is a case of non-joinder. Where a person who is not a necessary
or proper party to a suit has been joined as a party to the suit it is a case of mis-joinder
of parties.
Order I, Rule 9 provides that no suit shall be defeated by reason of the mis-
joinder or non-joinder of parties, and the court may in every suit deal with the matter
in controversy so far as regards the rights and interests of the parties actually before it.
Proviso to the rule says that nothing in this rule shall apply to non-joinder of necessary
parties.
If the person who is likely be affected by the decree is not joined as a party in
the suit or appeal, the suit or appeal is liable to be dismissed on that ground alone.
But in Joseph v Union of India
48
all the affected persons had not been joined
as parties to the partition. The interests of the persons who were not joined as parties
were identical with those persons who were before the court. It was held that the suit
was not liable to be dismissed on that ground.
48
1993 (2) SCC 627.
In Addepalli Venkata Laxmi v. Ayinampudi Nara Simha Rao
49
, it was held that
issue of non-joinder of necessary parties cannot be raised for the first time in appeal.
Order I Rule13 provides that all objections on the ground of non-joinder and
mis-joinder of parties must be taken at the earliest opportunity, otherwise they will be
deemed to have been waived.
Striking out, Adding or Substituting Parties (Order I Rule 10)
If after the filing of the suit, it is found that the suit has been instituted in the
name of the wrong person as plaintiff or where it is doubtful whether it has been
instituted in the name of the right person as plaintiff, the court may at any stage of the
suit if satisfied that the suit has been instituted through a bonafide mistake, and that it
is necessary for the determination of the real matter in dispute so to do, order any other
person to be substituted or added as plaintiff upon such terms as the court thinks just.
50
Order I Rule 10(2) provides that the court may at any stage of the proceedings,
either upon or without the application of either party, if it is appears to be just, order
the name of any party improperly joined whether as plaintiff or defendant, be struck
out and that the name of any person who ought to have been joined, whether as plaintiff
or defendant or whose presence is necessary to adjudicate and settle all the questions
involved in the suit be added.
Order I Rule 10(3) provides that no person shall be added as plaintiff without
his consent.
Mis-joinder of Cause of Action
If a plaintiff unites in the same suit several causes of action against the same
defendant, there is joinder of causes of action. By Order II Rule 3 a plaintiff may unite
in the same suit several causes of action against the same defendant. However, in a suit
for recovery of immovable property, no causes of action shall be joined except the
following without permission of the Court:
49
AIR 1994 AP 72.
50
Order I, Rule 10 (1).
(1) Claims for mesne profits or arrears of rent in respect of the property claimed;
(2) Claims for damages for breach of a contract under which the property is held.
In a suit for recovery of immovable property, the plaintiff cannot unite a claim
for compensation for defamation. If the plaintiff unites different causes of action in a
suit, the defendant can raise objection against the mis-joinder. However if no objection
is raised, the objections not so taken shall be deemed to have been waived.
In a partition action the plaintiff included all the assets of his father and the
father’s brother who together had shares in the partnership business carried on by them
and the persons in whose hands those assets are. It was held the suit is not bad either
for misjoinder of parties or causes of action.
51
Multifariousness
Mis-joinder of parties and mis-joinder of causes of action in a suit is technically
called multifariousness. If in a suit there are two or more defendants and two or more
causes of action, the suit will be bad for mis-joinder of defendants and mis-joinder of
causes of action. The joinder of such separate causes of action and separate defendants
makes that suit bad for multifariousness. It should be noted that the objection on the
ground of multifariousness should be taken at the earliest opportunity and any
objection not so taken shall be deemed to have been waived.
Once a multifarious suit is allowed to proceed which results in a decree, the plea
of multifariousness should be deemed to have been waived.
In Joseph alias Kochu v. Makkaru Pillai
52
, the suit was for trespass against
several defendants jointly. It was held that the finding that trespass was not joint would
not render the suit bad for multifariousness.
The overarching goal of Order I, Rule 1 is to promote judicial efficiency by allowing
all related claims to be adjudicated together in a single lawsuit. This prevents the need
for multiple, separate lawsuits when parties have interconnected claims arising from
51
Krishnan Achari v. Parthasarathi, 1959 KLR 928.
52
AIR 1960 Ker. 127.
the same set of circumstances. It also helps in avoiding inconsistent or contradictory
judgments that might arise from separate lawsuits on the same issue.
However, it's important to note that while this rule encourages the joinder of parties
with related claims, it does not require all possible parties to be joined. The rule leaves
room for the court's discretion in determining the appropriate parties to the suit based
on the specific circumstances of each case. In practice, the application of Order I, Rule
1 requires careful consideration of the facts, legal issues, and the potential parties
involved in a lawsuit to determine the most appropriate and efficient way to address
the claims.
TOPIC 9
REPRESENTATIVE SUIT (Order I Rule 8)
Order I, Rule 8 of the Code of Civil Procedure (CPC) in India deals with the concept
of a "representative suit." This rule allows for the filing of a lawsuit on behalf of or for
the benefit of a larger group or class of individuals who share a common interest or
have similar rights.
A representative suit is a suit filed by or against one or more persons on behalf
of themselves and others having the same interest in the suit. As a general rule, all
persons interested in a suit ought to be joined as parties to it, so that the matters
involved therein may be finally adjudicated and fresh litigations over the same matter
may be avoided.
Order I, Rule 8 states: "Where there are numerous persons having the same
interest in one suit, one or more of such persons may, with the permission of the Court,
sue or be sued, or may defend in such suit, on behalf of or for the benefit of all persons
so interested. But the Court shall in such case give, at the plaintiff's expense, notice of
the institution of the suit to all such persons either by personal service or, where, from
the number of persons or any other cause, such service is not reasonably practicable,
by public advertisement, as the Court in each case may direct."
Order I Rule 8 is an exception to this rule. Under this rule, when there are a
number of persons similarly interested in a suit, one or more of them can, with the
permission of the court or upon the direction from the court, sue or be sued on behalf
of themselves and others.
53
Rule 8(2) provides that the court shall, where permission is given, at the
expense of the plaintiff, give notice to the institution of the suit to all persons so
interested, either by personal service or public advertisement.
Rule 8(3) provides that any person on whose behalf or for whose benefit, a suit
is instituted or defended under Rule 8(1) may apply to the court to be made a party to
such suit.
Rule 8(4) provides that no part of the claim in any such suit shall be abandoned
nor shall be withdrawn and no compromise shall be recorded in any such suit unless
the court has given at the plaintiff’s expense notice to all persons so interested.
Rule 8(5) provides that, where any person suing or defending in any
representative suit does not proceed with due diligence in the suit or defence, the court
may substitute in his place any other person having the same interest in the suit.
Rule 8(6) provides that a decree passed in a representative suit shall be binding
on all persons on whose behalf or for whose benefit the suit is instituted or defended
as the case may be.
Order I, Rule 8 has been framed in order to save time and expense, to ensure a
single comprehensive trial of questions in which numerous persons are interested and
to avoid harassment of parties by a multiplicity of suit. For the application of Rule 8,
the following conditions must exist:
1. The parties must be numerous;
2. The parties must have the same interest;
3. The permission must be granted or direction must be given by the court
4. Notice must have been issued to the parties whom it is proposed to represent in the
suit.
Order I Rule 8 of the Code is an enabling provision and does not compel any
person to represent many, if he by himself has a right to sue. So also this rule does not
vest a right of suit in a person if he has no right to sue.
53
Order I Rule 8(1)(a),(b).
The explanation added by the Amended Act, 1976 clarifies that such persons
need not have the same cause of action. Again it is not necessary that the interest must
arise from the same transaction. Even if the persons who are represented in a
representative suit have separate cause of action or there are separate transactions, a
suit under Order I Rule 8 can be filed, if all of them are having the same interest.
In T.N. Housing Board v Ganapathy
54
, residential buildings were allotted by the
Board to the applicants who belonged to the low income group. After settlement of
price, excess demand was made by the Board. The allottees challenged the demand
by filing a suit in a representative capacity. It was contented that such a suit in a
representative capacity was not maintainable as separate demand notices were issued
against each of the allottees, giving rise to separate cause of action. Negativing the
contention, the Supreme Court held that all of them had the same interest and therefore
the suit was maintainable.
The purpose of Order I, Rule 8 is to streamline the legal process and avoid multiple,
identical lawsuits when numerous persons share the same interest or have common
rights that are at stake. It provides a mechanism for efficient resolution of disputes that
affect a broader group, such as class actions or suits on behalf of shareholders, tenants,
or other similarly situated parties. By allowing one or more individuals to represent
the interests of a larger group with the court's permission, the rule promotes judicial
economy and ensures that all affected parties have an opportunity to participate or
benefit from the legal proceedings. It is a significant tool for handling cases that
involve collective rights or interests in the Indian legal system.
TOPIC 10
SERVICE OF SUMMONS (Section 27 Order V)
Service of summons is a crucial aspect of the legal process in civil cases under the
Code of Civil Procedure (CPC) in India. It ensures that the parties involved are
informed about the lawsuit and have an opportunity to participate in the proceedings.
The relevant provisions regarding the service of summons are primarily found in
Section 27 and Order V of the CPC.
Summons to Defendants
54
1990 (vol.1) SCC 608.
S. 27 and O.V R.1 of the Code provides that where a suit has been duly
instituted, a summons may be issued to the defendant to appear and answer the claim
and may be served in manner prescribed on such day not beyond thirty days from the
date of institution of the suit.
55
Proviso I to O.V R.1 (1) states that no such summons shall be issued when a
defendant has appeared at the presentation of plaint and admitted the plaintiff’s claim.
Proviso II to O.V R.1 (1) states that where the defendant fails to file the written
statement within the said period of thirty days, he shall be allowed to file the same on
such other days as may be specified by the Court, for reasons to be recorded in writing,
but which shall not be later than ninety days from the date of service of summons.
A defendant to whom a summons has been issued may appear in person or by a
pleader.
56
If the court sees reason to require the personal appearance of the defendant,
the summons shall order him to appear in person in court on the day therein specified.
57
If the court sees reason to require the personal appearance of the plaintiff on the same
day, it shall make an order for such appearance.
58
In Purushothaman Nair v. Venugopalan
59
, it was held that notice issued
for leave to sue in forma pauperis cannot be taken as a summons. Since summons
should be issued to the defendant after the suit is formally registered.
In Razaq Trading Co. v. J.K. Industries Ltd.
60
, it was held that court
cannot order service of summons under Order 9 Rule 3 in addition to and
simultaneously to the service of summons under Rule 9(1) of Order 5.
In Gangadaran v. Narayanan
61
, it was held that issue of notice to a guardian of
the minor defendant’s and summons may be simultaneous.
Service of Summons where Defendant Resides in Another State
55
O.V, R.1.
56
O.V ,R.1 (2).
57
O.V, R.3 (1).
58
O.V, R.3 (2).
59
1980 KLT 451; ILR 1980 (2) Ker.331; 1980 KLN 301.
60
2003 (1) KLT 703; 2003 (1) KLJ 561; ILR 2003 (2) Ker.234; AIR 2003 Ker.171.
61
AIR 1959 Ker.169; ILR 1958 Ker.1064.
S. 28 (1) of the Code provides that a summons may be sent for service in another
State to such Court and in such manner as may be prescribed by rules in force in that
State.
S. 28 (2) of the Code provides that the Court to which such summons is sent
shall, upon receipt thereof, proceed as if it had been issued by such Court and shall
then return the summons to the Court of issue together with the record (if any) of its
proceedings with regard thereto.
S. 28 (3) of the Code provides that where the language of the summons sent for
service in another State is different from the language of the record referred to in sub-
section (2), a translation, of the record,-
(a) in Hindi, where the language of the Court issuing the summons is Hindi, or
(b) in Hindi or English where the language of such record is other than Hindi or English,
shall also be sent together with the record sent under that sub-section.
Service of Foreign Summonses
S. 29 of the Code provides that summonses and other processes issued by-
(a) any Civil or revenue Court established in any part of India to which the
provisions of this Code do not extend, or
(b) any Civil or Revenue Court established or continued by the authority of the
Central Government outside India, or
(c) any other Civil or Revenue Court outside India to which the Central
Government has, by notification in the Official Gazette, declared the provisions of this
section to apply,
may be sent to the Courts in the territories to which this Code extends, and served as
if they were summonses issued by such Courts.
Power to Order Discovery and the Like
S. 30 of the Code provides that subject to such conditions and limitations as may
be prescribed, the Court may, at any time either of its own motion or on the application
of any party,-
(a) make such orders as may be necessary or reasonable in all matters relating to the
delivery and answering of interrogatories, the admission of documents and facts, and
the discovery, inspection, production, impounding and return of documents or other
material objects producible as evidence;
(b) issue summonses to persons whose attendance is required either to give evidence or to
produce documents or such other objects as aforesaid;
(c) order any fact to be proved by affidavit.
Summons to Witness
S. 31 of the Code provides that the provisions in sections 27, 28 and 29 shall
apply to summonses to give evidence or to produce documents or other material
objects.
Penalty for Default
S. 32 of the Code provides that the Court may compel the attendance of any
person to whom a summons has been issued under section 30 and for that purpose
may-
(a) issue a warrant for his arrest;
(b) attach and sell his property;
(c) impose a fine upon him not exceeding five thousand
rupees;
(d) order him to furnish security for his appearance and in
default commit him to the civil prison.
Delivery of Summons by Court
By virtue of O.V, R.9 (1), where the defendant or his agent resides within the
jurisdiction of the court, the summons shall be delivered or sent either to the proper
officer to be served by him or one of his subordinates or to approved courier service.
By virtue of R.9 (2), the services of summons may be done by delivering or
transmitting a copy by registered post acknowledgement due, or by speed post or by
approved courier services.
Proviso to the above rule states that the service of summons under this rule shall
be made at expenses of the plaintiff.
According to R.9 (3), the services of summons may be made by delivering or
transmitting a copy thereof by registered post acknowledgement due, addressed to the
defendant or his agent empowered to accept the service or by speed post or by such
courier services as are approved by the High Court or by the Court referred to in sub-
rule (1) or by any other means of transmission of documents (including fax message
or electronic mail service) provided by the rules made by the High Court.
Proviso to R.9 (3) makes it clear that the service of summons under this sub-rule
shall be made at the expenses of the plaintiff.
In Daveed Ashirwadam v. Krishna Pillai Govinda Pillai
62
, it was held that when
a summons is issued under Rule 9(3) and is returned with the endorsement by the
postman that it was refused, there is no due service of summons.
In Padmanabhan Gopalan v. Raman Sekharan
63
, it was held that refusal to
accept postal notice was held to be not a due service and it was further held ex parte
decree cannot be passed on that ground.
In Jose v. Prabhakaran
64
, it was held that the service by registered post can be
issued only in addition to and simultaneous with the issue of summons in the manner
provided in the Rules.
In Razaq Trading Co. v. J.K. Industries Ltd
65
, it was held that court cannot order
services summons under R.9 (3) also in addition to and simultaneously to the service
of summons under R.9 (1) of O.5.
By virtue of R.9 (5), when an acknowledgment or any other receipt to be signed
by the defendant or his agent or postal article containing the summons is received back
by the court with an endorsement made by postal employee or an authorized person by
62
1970 KLT 907; 1971 KLJ 73; 1971 KLR 119.
63
1964 KLT 924; 1964 KLJ 1238; 1964 (2) KLR 137.
64
ILR 1991 (2) Ker.588.
65
2003 (1) KLT 743; 2003 (1) KLJ 561; ILR 2003 (2) Ker.234; AIR 2003 Ker.171.
a courier service to the effect that the defendant had refused to take delivery or had
refused to accept the summons when tendered or transmitted to him, the court issuing
the summons shall declare that the summons had been duly served to defendant.
Summons Given to the Plaintiff for Service
By virtue of O.V R.9A (1), the court may in addition to the service of summons
under Rule 9, on the application of the plaintiff permit such plaintiff to effect service
of such summons on such defendant and shall, in such a case, deliver the summons to
such plaintiff for service.
By virtue of R.9A (2), the service of such summons shall be effected by or on
behalf of such plaintiff by delivering or tendering to the defendant personally a copy
thereof.
By virtue of R.9A (4), if such summons when tendered, is refused or if the
person served refuses to sign an acknowledgement of service or for any reason such
summons cannot be served personally, the court shall on the application of the party,
re-issue such summons to be served by the court in the same manner as a summons to
a defendant.
Service on Agent by whom Defendant Carries on Business
By virtue of R.13, in suit relating to any business or work against a person who
does not reside within the local limits of the jurisdiction of the court from which the
summons is issued, service on any manager or agent who, at the time of service,
personally carries on such business or work for such person within such limits shall be
deemed good service.
Service on Agents in Charge of Property in Suits for Immovable Property
By virtue of R.14, where in a suit relating to immovable property service cannot
be made on the defendant in person and the defendant has no agent empowered to
accept the service it may be made on any agent of the defendant in charge of the
property.
Where Service may be Made on an Adult Member of the Defendant’s Family
By virtue of R.15, where in any suit defendant is absent from his residence when
the service of summons is sought to effected on him at his residence and there is no
likelihood of his being found at the residence within a reasonable time and he has no
agent empowered to accept service of the summons service may be made on any adult
member of the family, whether male or female who is residing with him.
A servant is not a member of the family within the meaning of this rule.
66
In Krishna Pillai v. Shahul Hameed
67
, it was held that under Order 5 Rule 15 it
is only when the defendant cannot be found and has no agent empowered to accept the
service of summons on his behalf that service of summons may be made on any adult
member of the family of the defendant who is residing with him.
Persons Served to Sign Acknowledgement
By virtue of R.16, the serving officer shall require the signature of the person to
whom the copy is so delivered or tendered to an acknowledgement of service endorsed
on the original summons.
Procedure When the Defendant Refuses to Accept the Service, or cannot be Found
By virtue of R.17, the serving officer shall affix a copy of the summons on the
outer door or some other conspicuous part of the house in which the defendant
ordinarily resides or carries on business or personally works for gain, and shall then
return the original to the court from which it was issued with a report endorsed thereon
or annexed thereto stating that he has so affixed the copy and the circumstances under
which he did so.
Endorsement of Time and Manner of Service
By virtue of R.18, the serving officer shall, endorse or annex, or cause to be
endorsed or annexed, on or to the original summons, a return stating the time when
and the manner in which the summons was served, and the name and address of the
person identifying the person served, if any, and witnessing the delivery or tender of
the summons.
Examination of Serving Officer
R.19 provides that where a summons is returned under Rule17, the Court shall,
if the return under that rule has not been verified by the affidavit of the serving officer,
and may, if it has been so verified, examine the serving officer on oath, or cause him
66
Explanation to R.15.
67
1953 KLT 802; ILR 1953 TC 405; AIR1953 TC 494; 1954 (9) DLR TC 197.
to be so examined by another Court, touching his proceedings, and may make such
further enquiry in the matter as it thinks fit; and shall either declare that the summons
has been duly served or order such service as it thinks fit.
In State v. H.W. Mohammed
68
, it was held that if the process server does not file
the affidavit under Rule 19 is not complied with. The service is there by not in
accordance with law.
In Bakianathan Nadar Ponnayan Nadar v. Karthyaini Pillai Parvathy Pillai
69
,
it was held that a declaration regarding service of notice may be implied and such an
implied declaration is sufficient compliance with law.
In Krishna Iyer v. Bhavani Bai
70
, summons was returned with the endorsement
that it was refused. Court without knowledge of the same ordered fresh summons.
Meanwhile the return of summons was brought to the notice of the court. It was held
that the order of the court declaring the defendant ex parte is proper.
Substituted Service
By virtue of R.20 (1), where the court is satisfied that the defendant is keeping
out of the way for the purpose of avoiding service or for any other reason , the
summons cannot be served in the ordinary way, the court shall order the summons to
be served by affixing a copy in some conspicuous place in the court house, and upon
some conspicuous part in the house if any, in which the defendant is known to have
last resided or carried on business or personally worked for gain, or in such other
manner as the court thinks fit.
By virtue of R.20 (1A), where the court orders service by an advertisement in a
newspaper, the news paper shall be a daily newspaper circulating in the locality in
which the defendant is last known to have actually and voluntarily resided, carried on
business or personally worked for gain.
By virtue of R.20 (2), the effect of substituted service shall have the same effect
as if made on the defendant personally.
68
AIR 1972 SC 2538.
69
1956 KLT 327.
70
1959 KLR 1420.
By virtue of R.20 (3) where service is substituted by the order of the court, the
court shall fix such time for appearance of the defendant.
Service of Summons where Defendant Resides within Jurisdiction of Another Court
By virtue of R.21 a summons may be sent by the court either by one of its
officers or by post or by approved courier service, by fax message or by electronic mail
service or by any other means as may be provided by the rules made by the High Court
to any court having jurisdiction in the place where the defendant resides.
Duty of the Court to which Summons is Sent.
By virtue of R.23 the court to which the summons is sent, upon receipt of it,
shall proceed as if it had been issued by such court.
Service on Defendant in Prison
By virtue of R.24 the summons shall be delivered or sent to the officer in charge
of the prison for service on the defendant by post or by approved courier service or by
fax message or by electronic mail service or by any other means as may be provided
by the rules made by the High Court.
Service Where the Defendant Resides out of India and has no agent
By virtue of R.25 the summons shall be addressed to the defendant at the place
where he is residing and sent to him.
Substitution of Letter for Summons
By virtue of R.30 (1) the court may, notwithstanding anything hereinbefore
contained, substitute for a summons a letter signed by the Judge or such officer as he
may appoint in this behalf, where the defendant is, in the opinion of the court, of a rank
entitling him to such mark of consideration.
By virtue of R.30 (2) a letter substituted under sub-rule (1) shall contain all the
particulars required to be stated in a summons, and, subject to the provisions of sub-
rule (3), shall be treated in all respect as a summons.
By virtue of R.30 (3) a letter so substituted may be sent to the defendant by post
or by a special messenger selected by the court, or in any other manner which the court
thinks fit; and, where the defendant has an agent empowered to accept service, the
letter may be delivered or sent to such agent.
Service of summons is a fundamental step in ensuring due process and giving all
parties an opportunity to participate in the legal proceedings. It is essential for initiating
and conducting a fair and transparent legal process in civil cases. The specific rules
and procedures in Order V of the CPC provide clarity on how summons should be
issued and served to uphold the principles of justice and fairness in litigation.
TOPIC 11
WRITTEN STATEMENT (Order VIII Rule 1)
The "Written Statement" is a critical document in civil litigation under the Code of
Civil Procedure (CPC) in India. It is filed by the defendant in response to the plaintiff's
plaint, and it outlines the defendant's version of the facts, defenses, and counterclaims,
if any. The relevant provisions regarding the written statement can be found in Order
VIII, Rule 1 of the CPC.
When the summons is obtained by a defendant, he may appear in person or by
a pleader duly instructed. It shall thereafter be obligatory on the part of the defendant
to present a written statement of his defence. It is for the defendant to give the
foundation of his defence and this constituted what is called written statement.
Written Statement
Order VIII, Rule 1 of the CPC states:
"(1) The defendant shall, within thirty days from the date of service of summons on
him, present a written statement of his defence.
(2) Where the defendant fails to file the written statement within the said period of
thirty days, he shall be allowed to file the same on such other day, as may be specified
by the Court, for reasons to be recorded in writing, but which shall not be later than
ninety days from the date of service of summons.
(3) No particular form of pleading is prescribed, but the pleadings shall contain a
clear and concise statement of the material facts on which the party pleading relies for
his claim or defence, as the case may be, but not the evidence by which they are to be
proved."
The defendant shall, within thirty days from the date of service of summons on him,
present a written statement of his defence:
Provided that where the defendant fails to file the written statement within the
said period of thirty days, he shall be allowed to file the same on such other day, as
may be specified by the court, for reasons to be recorded in writing, but which shall be
not later than ninety days from the date of service of summons.
In Smt. Rani Kusum v. Smt. Kanchan Devi and Ors
71
, the respondent filed
written statement beyond the prescribed period of 90 days. The trial court allowed the
same. It was found that the limitation prescribed for filing written statement was not
mandatory.
In Chandralatha Finance Ltd. v. Annamalai Finance Ltd
72
, it was held that the
right to lead evidence shifts to the defendant when the defendant admits the main
allegations made by the plaintiff.
In Krishnan Nair v. Sivasankaran Pillai
73
, it was held that after setting aside ex-
parte decree, the court can grant time to file written statement, even if it is not filed
within 90 days.
In Kanwar v.Baru Ram
74
, it was held that when the defence of a defendant is
struck off, the defendant is entitled to cross-examine the plaintiff’s witnesses and also
to address arguments, but he cannot be permitted to adduce evidence in support of his
case.
71
JT 2005 (7) SC 409.
72
1996 (1) KLT 517.
73
2005(1) KLT 324.
74
1990(2) KLT SN 39; (1990-2) 98 PLR 23.
Order VIII Rule 1 provides that the defendant shall at or before the first hearing
or within such time as the court may permit, which shall not be beyond 30 days from
the date of service of summons on the defendant, present a written statement of his
defence. The written statement consists the defence of the defendant.
CPC (Amendment) Act, 2002 made a proviso that where a defendant fails to file
the written statement within 30 days, he shall be allowed to file the same on such other
day, as may be specified by the court, but which shall not be later than 90 days from
the date of service of summons.
In written statement, the defendant must raise by his pleading all matters which
show the suit not maintainable or that the transaction is either void or voidable in point
of law and all such grounds of defence.
Rule 3 states that the defendant must deny specifically with each allegation of
fact of which he does not admit the truth and therefore it shall not be sufficient to deny
generally the grounds alleged by the plaintiff.
In Abubaker and another v. Abdul Rahim Beary and others
75
, it was held that
O.VIII of C.P.C. requires denial of allegation in the plaint is to be specific.
In Jahuri v. Dwaraka
76
, it was held that if the plaint assertion of a fact is not
specifically denied or by necessary implication or stated to be not admitted in written
statement and instead pleaded that the defendant had no knowledge of the fact it shall
be taken to be admitted.
In Kishorilal v, Chatibai
77
, it was held that a case not pleaded in written
statement cannot be set up.
In K.A. Louise and Others v. A.A Augustine
78
, it was held that when there is no
specific denial in the written statement regarding the plaint averments, there is no
duty cast upon the plaintiff to adduce evidence regarding the matters which are not
specifically denied.
75
1960 (1) KLR 452.
76
AIR 1967 SC 109, 111.
77
AIR 1959 SC 504.
78
2004 (3) KLT 71; 2004 (2) KLJ 361; ILR 2004 (3) Ker.539.
In Mahendra v. Sushila
79
, it was held that a matrimonial cause cannot be decided
on admission.
In Badat and Co. v. East India Trading Co
80
, it was held that court can ask a
party to prove a particular fact even in case of implied admission.
In Sheik Abram Sahib v. Kesava Kammath
81
, it was held that effect of suit by
endorsee of a promissory note in favour of a company for balance amount due is not
hit by S.56 of Negotiable Instruments Act.
If the defendant relies on any document, whether or not in his possession or
power, he must enter such documents in a list.
Then he must-
a. if a written statement is presented, annex the list to the written statement;
b. if the written statement is not presented, present the list to the court at the first
hearing of the suit.
In Radhamony v. Jagannath, the Orissa H.C. held that, even without filing the
written statement, the defendant can participate in the remaining proceedings and can
contest.
If any such document which ought to be entered in such a list is not so entered
it cannot be used in evidence by the defendant at the time of hearing of the suit without
the leave of the court.
Where the court grants leave it shall record its reasons for doing so. No such
leave shall be granted unless good cause is shown to the satisfaction of the court for
the non-entry of the document in the list.
Where the defendant has not filed a pleading, it shall be lawful for the court to
pronounce judgment on the basis of the facts contained in the plaint, except as against
a person under a disability. But the Court may in its discretion, require any such fact
of the plaint to be proved.
79
AIR 1965 SC 364,371.
80
AIR 1964 SC 538.
81
1964 KLJ 437.
The written statement is a critical document in civil proceedings as it outlines the
defendant's side of the dispute, sets forth defenses, and plays a pivotal role in shaping
the course of the litigation. It is essential for maintaining fairness and transparency in
the legal process, ensuring that both parties have the opportunity to present their case.
TOPIC 12
SET-OFF (Order VIII, Rule 6)
"Set-off" is a legal mechanism provided under the Code of Civil Procedure (CPC) in
India, specifically governed by Order VIII, Rule 6. It allows a defendant to assert a
counterclaim or set-off against the plaintiff's claim. This means that if the defendant
has a claim against the plaintiff that arises out of the same transaction or set of
circumstances, they can seek to have their claim set off against the plaintiff's claim.
Where in a suit for the recovery of money, the defendant claims to set-off against
the plaintiff’s demands any ascertained sum of money, legally recoverable by him from
the plaintiff, not exceeding the pecuniary limits of the jurisdiction of the court, and
both parties fill the same character as they fill in the plaintiff’s suit, the defendant may,
at the first hearing of the suit, but not afterwards, unless permitted by the court, present
a written statement containing the particulars of the debt sought to be set-off.
Set-off is a defence of the defendant in a money suit. It wipes off or reduces the
plaintiff’s claim. It is a reciprocal acquittal of debt.
Order VIII, Rule 6 of the CPC states:
"(1) A defendant in a suit may, in addition to his right of pleading a set-off under rule
6A, set up, by way of counterclaim against the claims of the plaintiff, any right or claim
in respect of a cause of action accruing to the defendant against the plaintiff either
before or after the filing of the suit but before the defendant has delivered his defense
or before the time limited for delivering his defense has expired, whether such
counterclaim is in the nature of a claim for damages or not; such counterclaim shall
have the same effect as a cross-suit so as to enable the Court to pronounce a final
judgment in the same suit, both on the original claim and on the counterclaim.
(2) A counterclaim under this rule shall not affect the lien of the plaintiff's suit upon
the property or the pecuniary obligation in respect of which the suit is brought, but in
a proper case the Court may direct the plaintiff to give security for costs of the
counterclaim.
(3) Except with the leave of the Court, a defendant shall not plead a counterclaim if,
by reason of a previous suit or otherwise, he has obtained a decree against the plaintiff
in respect of the cause of action upon which the counterclaim is founded."
Illustration
1. A files a suit to recover Rs. 1,00,000/- from B. In this suit B claims the recovery of Rs.
20,000/- from A. This is set-off and so B need pay Rs. 80,000/- only.
2. A dies intestate and in debt to B. C takes out administration to A’s effects and B buys
part of the effects from C. In a suit for the purchase-money by C against B, the latter
cannot set-off the debt against the price, for C fills two different characters, one as the
vendor to B, in which he sues B, and the other as representative to B.
3. A and B sue C for Rs. 15,000/-.C cannot set-off a debt due to him by A alone.
4. A sues B and C for Rs. 10,000/-.B cannot set-off a debt due to him alone by A.
5. A owes the partnership firm of B and C Rs. 1,00,000/-. B dies leaving C surviving. A
sues C for A debt of Rs. 1,50,000/- due in his separate character. C may set-off the
debt of Rs. 1,00,000.
In order to raise the defence of Set-off, the following conditions must be
satisfied:
1. The suit must be a money suit.
2. The defendant must file a written statement.
3. The defendant must admit the plaintiffs claim.
4. The amount to be set-off must be ascertained sum of money
5. It must be legally recoverable.
6. It should not be beyond the pecuniary jurisdiction of the court.
7. The parties must fill in the same character.
8. If there is more than one plaintiff or more than one defendant, the amount to
be set-off must be recoverable by all the defendants from the plaintiffs.
Order VIII Rule 6(2) provides the effect of set-off. The written statement shall
have the same effect as a plaint in a cross suit, so as to enable the court to pronounce
a final judgment in respect both of original claim and of the set-off.
In Christopher v. State Bank of Travancore
82
, it was held that set-off and counter
claim must be in reference to the same cause of action.
In Pathrose Samuel v. K. Parameswaran
83
, it was held that while set off is a
defence counter claim is a cross-suit. Counter claim need not be an action of the same
nature as the original action or even analogous thereto. Counter claim is not confined
to a suit for money only.
A set-off may be (a) Legal or (b) Equittable.
(a) Legal Set-off
In a legal set-off it is necessary that the amount claimed must be ascertained.
Plea of legal set-off can be raised as of right and the court is bound to entertain and
adjudicate upon it. It is a ground of defence as a shield and not as a sword. The
defendant must pay court fee while claiming a set-off. Where set-off is not pleaded in
written statement, court cannot reduce the amount claimed by the plaintiff. A barred
debt is not legally recoverable and therefore cannot be set-off.
(b) Equitable Set-Off
The equitable set-off cannot be claimed as a right. The court has discretion to
adjudicate upon a plea of equitable set-off in the same suit or to order it to be dealt
within a separate suit. Equitable set-off arises when both the claims of the plaintiff and
the defendant arise out of the same transaction.
82
ILR 1998 (3) Ker.310.
83
AIR 1988 Ker.163.
For e.g. Suppose the plaintiff agrees to deliver 100 bales of cotton to the
defendant but he delivers only 25 bales of cotton to the defendant. The defendant is
not paying the price of those 25 bales of cotton. Now, if the plaintiff files a suit for the
price of the goods delivered, the defendant can, by way of equitable set-off, claim
damages for non-delivery of the remaining goods ordered by him but not supplied by
the plaintiff. Similarly, if an employee files a suit against his employer for arrears of
salary the employer can, by way of equitable set-off, claim damages arising out of the
employees misconduct in performing his duties. An equitable set-off can be pleaded
in respect of an unascertained sum. Equitable set-off cannot be pleaded where the sum
is ascertained. The claim of equitable set-off cannot be granted if no such plea has been
raised in the written statement. The defendant claiming set-off either legally or
equitable has to pay the court fee on the full amount claimed. If the party does not pay
the same, the court is justified in ignoring the plea.
Distinction between Legal and Equitable Set-off
1. Legal set-off must be an ascertained sum of money; but equitable set-off must be
allowed in respect of an unascertained sum of money.
2. In a legal set-off a court is bound to entertain and adjudicate upon the plea whereas in
an equitable set-off the court is not bound to accept it. The court has the discretion to
refuse to take notice to the equitable set-off if the investigation into the equitable claim
is likely to result in delay.
3. In a legal set-off, it is not necessary that the cross demands arise out of the same
transaction unlike in an equitable set-off.
4. In a legal set-off, the amount claimed to be set-off must be legally recoverable and not
barred by limitation at the date of the suit. But a claim by way of an equitable set-off
may be legally recoverable. In both court fee is necessary.
Set-off and counterclaims play a crucial role in the efficient resolution of disputes in
civil litigation. They enable all relevant claims and defenses to be considered in a
single lawsuit, reducing the need for multiple legal actions arising from the same set
of circumstances. This contributes to the expeditious and comprehensive resolution of
disputes in the Indian legal system.
TOPIC 13
COUNTER CLAIM (Order VIII, Rule 6A)
"Counterclaim" is a legal mechanism provided under the Code of Civil
Procedure (CPC) in India, specifically governed by Order VIII, Rule 6A. This rule
allows a defendant to assert a counterclaim against the plaintiff's claim, provided that
certain conditions are met. Counterclaims enable the defendant to seek relief against
the plaintiff within the same lawsuit, rather than initiating a separate legal action.
Order VIII, Rule 6A of the CPC states:
"(1) A defendant in a suit may, at or before the first hearing or at or before being
required by the Court to file his written statement, present a counterclaim in respect of
the cause of action in the suit.
(2) Such counterclaim shall have the same effect as a cross-suit, so as to enable the
Court to pronounce a final judgment in the same suit, both on the original claim and
on the counterclaim.
(3) The plaintiff shall be at liberty to file a written statement in answer to the
counterclaim of the defendant within such period as may be fixed by the Court."
A defendant in a suit may, in addition to his right of pleading a set-off under
Rule 6, by way of counter claim against the claim of the plaintiff, any right or claim in
respect of a cause of action accruing to the defendant against the plaintiff either before
or after the filing of the suit but before the defendant has delivered his defence or before
the time for delivering has expired, whether such counter claim is in the nature of a
claim for damages or not. Provided that such counter claims shall not exceed the
pecuniary limits of the jurisdiction of the court.
A counter claim is not merely a defence to the plaintiffs action, but is
substantially a cross action. The court has got the power to treat the counter claim in
the plaint submitted by the defendant as a cross suit and hear the two parties
84
. A
counter claim as such affords no direct defence to a plaintiffs claim, but is a weapon
as defence. A counter claim is treated as a plaint and the plaintiff can file written
statement to the counter claim.
A counter claim need not arise out of the same transaction. A counter claim
enables the defendant to enforce a claim against the plaintiff. In the counter claim if
the claim is barred on the date of the written statement, the court shall not allow it.
R. 6A (3) provides that the plaintiff shall file a written statement in answer to
the counter-claim of the defendant within such period as may be fixed by the court.
Normally counter claim is also considered as a defence of the defendant in a
money suit. If the claim of the defendant is below or upto the plaintiff’s claim, then
the defendant can raise the plea of set-off and if the claim of the defendant is greater
than the claim of the plaintiff, the defendant can claim by way of counter claim. In
both set-off and counter claim, the defendant must pay the court fee.
Distinction between Set-off and Counter Claim
1) Set-off must be for an ascertained sum or must arise out of the same transaction
(equitable set-off) as the plaintiff claim; a counter claim however, need not arise from
the same transaction.
2) Set-off is a good ground of defence and it should be pleaded in the written
statement; counter claim does not afford any defence to the plaintiff’s claim. It is said
that a set-off is a shield and not a sword.
84
Rule 6A (2).
3) In the case of set-off, the plaintiff in order to establish his plea of limitation has to
prove that the set-off is barred when the plaintiff commence his action. In a counter
claim, the plaintiff has to prove that it is barred when it is pleaded.
4) In a set-off the amount cannot exceed the plaintiff’s claim where as in a counter
claim, it may exceed the plaintiff’s claim.
In Christopher v. State Bank of Travancore
85
, it was held that set-off and counter
claim must be in reference to the same cause of action.
In Pathrose Samuel v. K. Parameswaran
86
, it was held that while set off is a
defence counter claim is a cross-suit. Counter claim need not be an action of the same
nature as the original action or even analogous thereto. Counter claim is not confined
to a suit for money only.
Counterclaims are a valuable tool in civil litigation as they promote efficiency by
allowing all relevant claims and counterclaims to be adjudicated within a single
lawsuit. This reduces the need for separate legal actions and contributes to the
comprehensive resolution of disputes. However, it's important to note that the
counterclaim must be based on the same subject matter as the plaintiff's claim, and it
should be presented within the specified timeframes outlined in Order VIII, Rule 6A
of the CPC.
TOPIC 14
PLEADINGS (Order VI)
"Pleadings" in the context of the Code of Civil Procedure (CPC) in India refer
to the formal written statements filed by the parties involved in a civil lawsuit.
Pleadings are essential because they define the issues in dispute, set out the facts and
claims of each party, and guide the course of the legal proceedings. The CPC contains
85
ILR 1998 (3) Ker.310.
86
AIR 1988 Ker.163.
detailed provisions regarding pleadings in Order VI. Order VI of the Code deals with
the general principles regarding pleadings. It consists of 29 Rules.
Pleadings
By virtue of R.1 pleading shall mean plaint or written statement. Pleading should
state material facts and not evidence.
By virtue of R.2 (1), every pleading shall contain and contain only, a statement
in a concise form of the material facts on which the party pleading relies, but not the
evidence by which they are to be proved.
By virtue of R.2 (2), every pleading shall, when necessary, be divided into
paragraphs, numbered consecutively, each allegation contained in a separate
paragraph.
By virtue of R.2 (3), dates, sums and numbers shall be expressed in figures as
well as in words.
In Vinod Kumar Arora v. Surjit Kaur
87
, it was held that pleadings of parties
being foundation of the case, cannot be given up and set out a new and different case.
Departure
By virtue of R.7, no pleading shall except by way of amendment, raise any new
ground of claim or contain any allegation of fact inconsistent with the previous
pleadings of the party pleading the same.
Effect of Document to be Stated
By virtue of R.9, wherever the contents of any document are material, it shall be
sufficient to state the effect thereof as briefly as possible in any pleading.
Malice, Knowledge, etc
By virtue of R.10, wherever it is material to allege malice, fraudulent intention,
knowledge or other condition of the mind of any person it shall be sufficient to allege
the same as a fact without setting out the circumstances from which the same is to be
inferred.
Presumptions of Law
87
AIR 1987 SC 2179.
By virtue of R.13, neither party need in any pleading allege any matter of fact
which the law presumes in his favour or so as to which the burden of proof lies upon
the other side unless the same has first been specifically denied.
Pleading to be Signed
By virtue of R.14, every pleading shall be signed by the party and his pleader (if
any).
Address for the service to notice
According to R.14A (1), every pleading, filed by a party, shall be accompanied
by a statement in the prescribed form, signed as provided in rule 14, regarding the
address of the party.
According to R.14A (2), such address may, from time to time, be changed in
lodging in Court a form duly filled up and stating the new address of the party and
accompanied by a verified petition.
According to R.14A (3), the address furnished in the statement made under sub-
rule (1)shall be called the “registered address” of the party, and shall, until duly
changed as aforesaid, be deemed to be the address of the party for the purpose of
service of all processes in the suit or in any appeal from any decree or order therein
made and for the purpose of execution, and shall hold good, subject as aforesaid, for a
period of two years after the final determination of the cause or matter.
According to R.14A (4), service of any process may be effected upon a party at
his registered address in all respects as though such party resided thereat.
According to R.14A (5), where the registered address of a party is discovered
by the Court to incomplete, false or fictitious, the court may, either on its own motion,
or on the application of any party, order-
a. in the case where such registered address was furnished by a plaintiff,
stay on the suit, or
b in the case where such registered address was furnished by a defendant,
his defence be struck out and he be placed in the same position as if he had not put up
any defence.
According to R.14A (6), where a suit is stayed or a defence is struck out under
sub-rule (5), the plaintiff or, as the case may be, the defendant may, after furnishing
his true address, apply to the Court for an order to set aside the order to stay or, as the
case may be, the order striking out the defence.
If the court is satisfied that the party was prevented by any sufficient cause from
filing the true address at the proper time, it shall set aside the order of stay or order
striking out the defence, on such terms as to costs or otherwise as it thinks fit and shall
appoint a day for proceeding with the suit or defence, as the case may be.
88
However
nothing in this rule shall prevent the Court from directing the service of a process at
any other address, if, for any reason, it thinks fit to do so.
89
Verification of Pleadings
By virtue of R.15(1), save as otherwise provided by any law for the time being
in force, every pleading shall be verified at the foot by the party or by one of the parties
pleading or by some other person proved to the satisfaction of the court to be
acquainted with the facts of the case.
By virtue of R.15 (2), the person verifying shall specify, by reference to the
numbered paragraphs of the pleading, what he verifies of his own knowledge and what
he verifies upon information received and believed to be true.
By virtue of R.15 (3), the verification shall be signed by the person making it
and shall state the date on which and place at which it was signed.
By virtue of R.15 (4), the person verifying the pleading shall also furnish an
affidavit in support of his pleadings.
Striking out Pleadings
By virtue of R.16, the court may at any stage of the proceedings order to be
struck out or amended any matter in any pleading -
a) which may be unnecessary, scandalous, frivolous or vexatious, or
b) which may tend to prejudice, embarrass or delay the fair trial of the suit, or
c) which is otherwise an abuse of the process of the court.
Amendment of Pleadings
88
O.VI ,R.14A (7).
89
O.VI ,R.14A (8).
By virtue of R.17, the court may at any stage of the proceedings allow either
party to alter or amend his pleadings in such manner and on such terms as may be just
or all such amendments shall be made for the purpose of determining the real question
in controversy between the parties.
Proviso to Rule 17 states that no application for amendment shall be allowed
after the trial has commenced unless the court is satisfied that in spite of due diligence,
the party could not have raised the matter before the commencement of the trial.
In Viswambar v. Laxminarayan
90
, the Supreme Court held that an amendment
of plaint though properly made cannot relate back to the date of filing of the suit and
cure the defect of limitation. It further ruled that where the amendment changed the
basis of the suit itself, the suit would be taken to have been filed on the date of the
amendment for the purposes of limitation.
In Dondapati Narayana Reddy v. Duggi Reddy Venkatanarayana Reddy
91
, the
Supreme Court held that if the plaintiff is given permission to lead additional evidence
while the suit is still pending, amendment of written statement should also be permitted
except in the following cases:-
(i) It is established that the amendment would be unjust and would result in prejudice
against the opposite side as could not be compensated by costs or would deprive him
of a right accrued due to lapse of time.
(ii) The prayer made has become time barred.
Failure to Amend after Order
By virtue of R.18, if a party who has obtained an order for leave to amend, does
not amend accordingly within the time specified for that purpose in the order or if no
time is specified, then within fourteen days from the date of the order, he shall not be
permitted to amend after the expiration of the time limited in the order or if no time is
limited then after the expiry of fourteen days unless the time is extended by the court.
In Janaki Amma Gomathi Amma v. Janaki Amma Meenakshi Amma and
Others
92
, it was held that if the amendment is allowed by the Trial Court the request
90
AIR 2001 SC 2007.
91
2001 (8) SCC 115.
92
1993 (2) KLJ 948.
for extension of time has also to be made to that Court and that Court alone has power
to permit the plaintiff to carry out the amendment in the original plaint.
Pleadings play a fundamental role in civil litigation by defining the scope of the
dispute, ensuring transparency, and guiding the court and the parties through the legal
process. Properly drafted pleadings are crucial for presenting a party's case effectively
and for maintaining fairness and justice in the adjudication of civil disputes under the
CPC.
TOPIC 15
APPEARANCE AND NON-APPEARANCE
OF PARTIES (Order IX)
Order IX of the Code of Civil Procedure (CPC) in India deals with the appearance and
non-appearance of parties in a civil lawsuit. It outlines the consequences of both
appearance and non-appearance and the procedures for setting aside an order of
dismissal in case of non-appearance.
Appearance of Parties and Consequence of Non-appearance
By virtue of R.1, parties shall appear on day fixed in summons for defendant to
appear and answer.
In New India Assurance Co. Ltd. v. Srinivasan
93
, it was held that the provisions
of Order 9 have not been made applicable to the proceedings under the Consumer
Protection Act.
In Beepathumma v. Khader Mooppan
94
, it was held that an order dismissing the
suit after the passing of preliminary decree is one passed without jurisdiction and is
therefore a nullity. Even if the order is not a nullity the Court is competent to set it
aside in the exercise of its inherent jurisdiction.
93
2000 (2) KLT 462: 2000 (3) SCC 242.
94
1956 KLT 75: AIR 1957 TC 197.
By virtue of R.2, the suit may be dismissed where summons not served in
consequence of plaintiff’s failure to pay costs or failure to present copies of the plaint
as required by Order VII Rule 9.
Proviso to R2 states that no such order shall be made, if notwithstanding such
failure, the defendant appears in person or by agent when he is allowed to appear by
agent on the day fixed for him to appear and answer.
In Dr Jess Raphael v. Joseph and Others
95
, it was held that unless the parties to
the case are informed by his Advocate or Clerk that the court has posted the case for
issuing summons, the parties cannot be blamed for not taking steps.
In Gopidas v. Sankaran
96
, application for restoration-dismissal of suit before
summons was served on the defendant comes under Rule 2 or Rule 5 and not under
Rule 8. It was held that when an application for restoration is rejected no appeal lies.
By virtue of R.3, where neither party appears, suit may be dismissed.
In Sarala v. Principal Munsiff
97
, suit was dismissed for non-appearance of
plaintiff. It was held that no decree is contemplated to be drawn up. It is not necessary
to produce copy of the decree along with application for setting aside order of
dismissal.
In Firoz Khan v. Bibi Hasina Khanam
98
, application was filed to set aside ex-
parte decree on ground of non service of summons. It was held that the applicant must
disclose the source of knowledge about passing of the ex-parte decree.
In Ratnamma v. Devasia
99
, application of adjournment by both parties was
rejected. Suit was dismissed on merits. It was held that a restoration application will
lie.
Plaintiff may Bring Fresh Suit or Court may Restore Suit to File
95
2000 (2) KLJ 684.
96
1961 (2) KLR 45.
97
1995 (2) KLT 560.
98
AIR 1994 Pat 103.
99
1953 KLT 326: AIR 1953 TC 387: 8 DLR TC 192.
By virtue of R.4, where a suit is dismissed under Rule 2 or Rule 3, the plaintiff
may (subject to law of limitation) bring a fresh suit or apply for an order to set aside
the dismissal, if he satisfies the court that there was sufficient cause for such failure
referred to in Rule 2 & 3.
In Healy v. State of Uttar Pradesh
100
, it was held that under Order 9 Rule 4 CPC
read with S.141, it is open to the petitioner to apply for an order to set the dismissal
aside and if he satisfies the Court that there was sufficient cause for his not paying the
batta required within the time fixed for the issue of notice, the Court has power to make
an order setting aside the dismissal.
In Mohanan v. Nalinakshan
101
, an application was filed under Order 9 Rule 4
for restoration of suit. It was held that it is not maintainable since plaint was rejected
under Order 7 Rule 11. Order 9 Rule 4 would apply only when suit is dismissed under
Order 9 Rule 2 or Order 9 Rule 3.
In Jamal v. Motor Accidents Claims Tribunal
102
, the petition was allowed on a
condition to deposit cost. It was held that instead of deposit, payment to the counsel is
enough.
In Anandavally Amma v. Fedral Bank Ltd
103
, it was held that when a suit is
dismissed for default, the plaintiff has to move the court that dismissed the suit under
Order 9 Rule 9. No appeal will lie since dismissal for default is not a decree and no
revision will lie since the plaintiff has a substantive right by way of an application
under Order 9 Rule 9.
By virtue of R.5, where, after summons has been issued to the defendant and
returned unserved, the plaintiff fails, for a period of seven days from the date of return
to apply for the issue of fresh summons, the court shall pass an order dismissing the
suit, unless the plaintiff has within the said period satisfies the court that-
(a) He has failed after using his best endeavours to discover the residence of the defendant;
100
1969 KLT SN 5.
101
2003 (3)KLT 532.
102
2001 (3) KLT 955.
103
2000 (2)KLT 242: 2000 (1)KLJ 747: ILR 2000 (2) Ker. 589.
(b) Such defendant is avoiding service of process; or
(c) There is any other sufficient cause for extending the time.
Procedure where Only Plaintiff Appears
By virtue of R.6 (1), where the plaintiff appears and the defendant does not
appear-
(a) When the summons duly served
If it is proved that the summons was duly served, the court may make an
order that the suit be heard ex-parte;
(b) When summons not duly served
If it is not proved that the summons was duly served, the court shall
direct a second summons to be issued and served on the defendant;
(c) When summons served but not in due time--
If it is proved that summons was served, but not in sufficient time to enable him to
appear and answer on the day fixed in the summons, the court shall postpone the
hearing of the suit to a future day to be fixed by the court, and shall direct notice of
such day to be given to the defendant.
By virtue of R.6 (2), where it is owing to the plaintiff’s default that the summons
was not duly served, or was not served in sufficient time, the court shall order the
plaintiff to pay the costs.
In Haridas v. Madhavi Amma
104
, it was held that the court owes a duty to weigh
the merits of the case and consider whether there is a case for granting a decree even
when there is no contest by non-appearance of the defendants.
In Parukutty Amma v. Reghunadhan
105
, the defendant though appeared in the
court below, did not file a written statement. Suit decreed ex parte. Effect of the remand
order is to re-open the entire case for a de novo trial. It was held that the defendant is
104
1987 (2) KLT 701; AIR 1988 Ker.304; 1987 KLN 514.
105
2003 (3) KLT 672.
entitled to file a written statement and contest the matter as if he had appeared on the
date of first posting.
In Kochu Velu v. Varkey
106
, it was held that even though the defendant is ex
parte, the duty is still there on the part of the plaintiffs to prove a prima facie case in
support of their claim. It is the duty of the court to consider the interest of the absent
party and not to pass a decree except on proof by the plaintiff that he is entitled to that
decree.
Procedure where the Defendant Appears on the Day of Adjourned Hearing and
Assigns for Previous Non- Appearance
By virtue of R.7, where the court has adjourned the hearing of the suit ex-parte,
and the defendant appears at or before such hearing, and assigns good cause for his
previous non-appearance, he may be heard.
Procedure where Defendant Only Appears
By virtue of R.8, where the defendant appears and the plaintiff does not appear
when the suit is called for hearing, the suit shall be dismissed unless the defendant
admits the claim, or part thereof, in which case the court shall pass a decree against the
defendant upon such admission.
Decree against the Plaintiff by Default Bars Fresh Suit
By virtue of R.9 (1), where a suit is partly or wholly dismissed under Rule 8, the
plaintiff shall be precluded from bringing a fresh suit in respect of the same cause of
action. But he may apply for an order to set the dismissal aside, if he satisfies the court
that there was sufficient cause for his non-appearance.
Remedies in case of Ex Parte Decree
An ex parte decree is a decree passed in the absence of the defendant. If the
plaintiff appears and the defendant does not appear when the suit is called on for
hearing and if the summons to the defendant is duly served, the court may hear the suit
ex parte and pass a decree against the defendant. Such a decree is neither null and void
106
1968 KLT 462.
nor inoperative but is merely voidable. So long as an ex parte decree is not annulled
by the court, it has all the force of a valid decree. The defendant has the following
remedies against an ex parte decree.
(a) He can apply to the court by which such decree is passed to set it aside:
107
or
(b) He can prefer an appeal against such decree:
108
or
(c) He can apply for review:
109
or
(d) He can file a suit to set aside the ex parte decree on the ground of fraud.
A. Application to Set Aside Ex Parte Decree against Defendants
By virtue of R.13, if the defendant satisfies the court that the summons was not
duly served, or that he was prevented by any sufficient cause from appearing, the court
shall make an order setting aside the ex-parte decree.
Various decisions show that following are some of the grounds recognized as
sufficient cause for non-appearance.
(a) Bona fide mistake regarding the date of hearing;
(b) Counsel not informing party reports to the Court that he has no instructions and ex-
parte is passed
110
;
(c) Late arrival of a train;
(d) Death of near relative;
(e) When ex-parte decrees passed against minor defendant on account of negligence of
guardian ad litem, minor can apply to set aside the decree
111
(f) Imprisonment of party;
(g) Inability on account of illness or accident;
(h) Ex-parte decree obtained by fraud of the opposite party
112
;
(i) Failure to file written statement on the day fixed for the same
113
(j) Mistake of pleader in noting wrong date in diary;
107
O. IX, R.13.
108
S.96 (2).
109
O.47, R.1.
110
Jaya Lakshmi v. Avara, 2003 (2) KLJ 377.
111
Nalini v. Govinda Menon, ILR 1955 TC 325.
112
Joseph v. Karmali, ILR 1995 (2) Ker.842.
113
Syamala Thankachi v. Kamalakshi Basurange,1993 (1) KLJ 176.
(k) Final decree passed without due summons or without due service of notice
114
;
(l) Illness of the pleader.
The application to set aside ex parte decree should be filed within 30 days from
the date of the decree, or where the summons is not duly served, within 30 days from
the date of his knowledge of the decree. An ex parte decree cannot be set aside without
notice to the opposite party.
Where the defendant has preferred an appeal against the ex parte decree and the
appeal has been disposed of on any ground other than the ground that the defendant
(appellant) has withdrawn the appeal, no application shall lie under R. 13 of setting
aside that ex parte decree.
No court shall set aside a decree passed ex-parte merely on the ground that there
has been irregularity in the service of summons, if it is satisfied that the defendant had
notice of the date of hearing and had sufficient time to appear.
115
After the setting aside of an ex parte decree the suit is to be restored, and the
court should proceed to decide the suit as it stood before the decree. In such cases the
trial should commence denovo and the evidence that had been recorded in the ex parte
proceedings should not be taken into account.
Though an appeal lies against an order rejecting an application (in a case open
to appeal to set aside an ex parte decree
116
) no appeal, lies against an order setting aside
an ex parte decree. But, a revision petition can be filed before the High Court under
Section 115 of the Code against an order setting aside an ex parte decree.
B. Appeal against Ex Parte Decree
An ex parte decree is a decree under Section 2 (2) of the Code and, therefore, an
aggrieved party can also prefer an appeal under Section 96 (2) of CPC against the ex
parte decree.
C. Review
114
C.K Thomas v. Bhavani Amma, 19969 KLJ 731.
115
Proviso II to R.13.
116
O.43 R.1 (d).
An aggrieved party can also file an application under a Section 114 Order 47
Rule 1 for review of the ex parte decree in the court which passed the ex parte decree.
Such a review application is to be filed before filing an appeal against the ex parte
decree.
D. Suit
Generally a suit to set aside an ex parte decree is not maintainable. However if
ex parte decree is alleged to have been obtained by the fraud of the plaintiff, the
defendant can file regular suit to set aside such decree. In such suits, the burden of
proof is on the party who alleges that the ex parte decree passed against him was
fraudulent.
In Sushil v. Gurpreet
117
, it was held that the second proviso added by the 1976
amendment, provides that no court shall set aside a decree passed exparte merely on
the ground that there has been a irregularity in the service of summons, if it is satisfied
that the defendant had notice of the date of hearing and had sufficient time to appear.
In Devaky v. Sukumaran Nair
118
, it was held that when the decree is confirmed
in appeal, the proper forum for filing application, under Order 9 Rule13, is the
appellate court with whose decree, the decree of the trial court got merged, irrespective
of the fact that it was confirmed, varied or reversed by the decree of the appellate court.
In X v. Y
119
, it was held that an application under Order 9 Rule 13 is not barred
merely because the disposal purports to be on merits.
In Kattuvava v. Velayudhan Pillai
120
, it was held that when the defendant against
whom ex parte decree passed is not a party to the appeal by other defendants, he can
apply to the court which passed the exparte decree to set aside the exparte decree.
In Shyam Sunder Sharma v. Pannalal Jaiswal
121
, it was held that an appeal
which is dismissed for default or is barred by limitation because of the dismissal of the
117
2002 (5) SCC 377.
118
1981 KLT SN 64.
119
1979 KLT SN 84.
120
1955 KLT 58.
121
2005(1) KLT 198.
application for condoning the delay in filing the same cannot be treated on par with
non filing of an appeal or the withdrawal of an appeal.
In Kewal Ram v. Ramlubhai
122
, it was held that an application under Order 9
Rule 13 for setting aside an ex parte decree by persons upon whom summons of Trial
Court and notice of Appellate Court were not served shall lie although the ex parte
decree was confirmed in appeal.
In Peelikunju v. Sreedharan
123
, when case was posted for evidence, application
for adjournment was dismissed and defendants were set ex-parte. It was held that the
disposal is under Order 17 Rule 2 and therefore decree could be set aside under Order
9 Rule 13.
In Shanmughan v. Federal Bank
124
, it was held that though the right to proceed
to decide on merit in cases of default of appearance of parties has been taken out of
Order17 Rule 3, it has been conferred in restricted cases by the explanation to Order
17 Rule 2. The defendants were justified in filing the application under Order 9 Rule
13.
In Sounthamma George v. Kunnirickal Chitty Fund
125
, it was held that an
application under Order 9 Rule 13 is not barred merely because the disposal purports
to be on the merits. If it falls under Order 17 Rule 3 there is a bar to an application
under Order 9 Rule 13 of the Code.
Order IX of the CPC is designed to ensure that parties in a civil lawsuit participate in
the proceedings as required by law. It allows for the setting aside of orders or decrees
in cases of non-appearance or non-prosecution when parties can demonstrate sufficient
cause for their absence. This balances the interests of justice while promoting the
efficient and timely resolution of disputes.
122
AIR 1987 SC 1304.
123
1985 KLT SN 87.
124
1987 (1) KLT SN 39.
125
1980 KLT 464.
TOPIC 16
SETTLEMENT OF ISSUES (Order XIV)
Order XIV of the Code of Civil Procedure (CPC) in India deals with the
settlement of issues in a civil lawsuit. Issues are the key questions or points of
dispute that need to be determined by the court during the trial. The procedure
outlined in Order XIV is essential for clarifying and narrowing down the matters that
the court needs to decide.
ISSUES
Framing of Issues
By virtue of R.1 (1), issues arise when a material preposition of fact or law is
affirmed by one party and denied by the other.
By virtue of R. 1(4), issues are of two kinds;
(a) issues of fact,
(b) issues of law.
By virtue of R.1(5), at the first hearing of the suit the court shall, after reading
the plaint and the written statement and after examination under Order X Rule2 and
after hearing the parties or their pleaders, ascertain the issues.
By virtue of Rule 1(6), the court need not frame and record issues where the
defendant at the first hearing of the suit makes no defence.
Court to Pronounce Judgment on all Issues
By virtue of Rule 2 (1), the court shall pronounce judgment on all issues.
By virtue of Rule 2 (2), where issues of both law and fact arise in the same suit,
and the court is of the opinion that the case or any part thereof may be disposed of on
an issue of law only, it may try that issue only if that issue relates to;
(a) jurisdiction of the court,
(b) a bar to the suit created by any law for the time being in force.
In Manager, Bettiah Estate v. Sri Bhagawati Saran Singh
126
, it was held that
unless preliminary point is pleaded by the party it cannot be decided by the courts as a
preliminary issue.
In M/s Femina Handloom of India v. M/s M.R. Verma and Sons
127
, it was held
that issue regarding territorial jurisdiction of the court ought to be tried as preliminary
issue.
Materials from which Issues may be Framed
By virtue of Rule 3, the court may frame the issues from all or any of the
following materials.-
(a) allegations made by the parties, or by their representatives or by the pleaders
of such parties,
(b) allegations made in the pleadings or in answer to interrogatories delivered in the
suit;
(c) the contents of documents produced by either party.
Court may Examine Witnesses or Documents before Framing Issues
By virtue of Rule 4, where the court is of opinion that the issues cannot be
correctly framed without the examination of some person not before the court or with
out the inspection of some document not produced in the suit, the court may adjourn
the framing of the issues to a day not later than seven days and may subject to any law
for the time being in force compel the attendance of any person for the production of
any document.
Power to Amend and Strike out Issues
By virtue of Rule 5 (1), the court may at any time before the passing of a decree
amend the issues or frame additional issues.
By virtue of Rule 5 (2), the court may also, at any time before passing a decree
strike out any issue.
126
AIR1993 All 2.
127
AIR 1993 Ker 210.
Questions of Fact or Law may by Agreement be Stated in Form of Issues By virtue
of Rule 6, where the parties to the suit are agreed as to the question of fact or of law,
they may state the same in the form of an issue, and enter in to an agreement in writing
that:
(a) a sum of money specified in the agreement or to be ascertained by the court,
shall be paid by one of the parties to the other of them, or that one of them be declared
entitled to some right or subject some liability specified in the agreement;
(b) some property specified in the agreement and in dispute in the suit shall be
delivered by one of the parties to the other of them or as that other may direct; or
(c) one or more of the parties shall do or abstain from doing some particular act
specified in the agreement and relating to the matter in dispute.
By virtue of Rule 7 Court, if satisfied that agreement was executed in good faith
may pronounce judgment-where the court is satisfied,-
(a) that the agreement was duly executed by the parties;
(b) that they have a substantial interest in the decision of such question;
(c) that the same is fit to be tried and decided;
(d) it shall proceed to record and try the issue and shall, pronounce judgment
according to the terms of the agreement and a decree.
The settlement of issues under Order XIV is a critical step in the civil litigation process.
It helps streamline the trial by identifying the precise questions that need to be
addressed and ensures that both parties have a clear understanding of the matters in
dispute. It also facilitates the efficient presentation of evidence and arguments during
the trial, ultimately leading to a fair and timely resolution of the lawsuit.
TOPIC 17
HEARING OF THE SUIT AND
EXAMINATION OF WITNESSES (Order XVIII)
Order XVIII of the Code of Civil Procedure (CPC) in India governs the conduct of the
hearing of a suit and the examination of witnesses during the trial of civil cases. This
order outlines the procedures, responsibilities of the parties, and the role of the court
in managing the trial process.
Right to Begin
Rule 1 provides that the plaintiff has the right to begin unless the defendant
admits the facts alleged by the plaintiff and contends that either on point of law or on
some additional facts alleged by the defendant the plaintiff is not entitled to any of the
reliefs which he seeks, in which case the defendant has the right to begin.
Statement and Production of Evidence
Rule 2 (1) provides that on the day fixed for the hearing of the suit or on any
other day to which the hearing is adjourned, the party having the right to begin shall
state his case and produce his evidence in support of the issues.
Rule 2 (2) provides that the other party shall then state his case and produce his
evidence. Rule 2 (3) provides that the party beginning may then reply generally.
Rule 2(3A) provides that any party may address oral arguments in a case, and
shall before he concludes the oral arguments submit if the court permits concisely
written arguments which shall form part of the record. Rule 2 (3B) provides
that a copy of the written arguments shall be furnished to the opposite party
simultaneously. However no adjournment shall be granted for filing the written
arguments, except for some reasons recorded in writing.
128
Court shall fix time limits
for oral arguments for both the parties.
129
Evidence where there are Several Issues
Rule 3 provides that where there are several issues, the burden of proving some
of which lies on the other party, the party beginning may, at his option, either produce
his evidence on those issues or reserve it by way of answer to the evidence produced
by the other party; and in the latter case the party beginning may produce evidence on
those issues after the other party has produced all his evidence, and the other party may
then reply on the evidence so produced by the party beginning; but the party beginning
will then be entitled to reply generally on the whole case.
Recording of Evidence
128
R.2 (3C).
129
R.2 (3D).
Rule 4 (1) provides that in every case, the examination in chief of a witness shall
be on affidavit and copies thereof shall be supplied to the opposite party by the party
who calls him for evidence.
Proviso to this rule states that, where documents are filed and the parties rely
upon the documents, the proof and admissibility of such documents which are filed
along with the affidavit shall be subject to the orders of the court.
The evidence (cross examination and re examination) of the witness in
attendance, whose evidence (examination in chief) by affidavit has been furnished to
the court, shall be taken either by the court or by the commissioner appointed by it.
130
How Evidence shall be Taken in Appealable Cases
Rule 5 provides that in cases in which an appeal is allowed, the evidence of each
witness shall be,-
(a) taken down in the language of the Court,-
(i) in writing by, or in the presence and under the personal direction and superintendence
of, the Judge, or
(ii) from the dictation of the Judge directly on a typewriter; or
(b) if the Judge, for reasons to be recorded, so directs, recorded mechanically in the
language of the Court in the presence of the Judge.
When Deposition to be Interpreted
Rule 6 provides that where the evidence is taken down in language different
from that in which it is given, and the witness does not understand the language in
which it is taken down, the evidence as taken down in writing shall be interpreted to
him in the language in which it is given.
Evidence under Section 138
Rule 7 provides that evidence taken down under Section 138 shall be in the form
prescribed by rule 5 and shall be read over and signed and, as occasion may require,
interpreted and corrected as if it were evidence taken down under that rule.
130
R.4 (2).
Memorandum when Evidence not taken down by Judge
Rule 8 provides that where the evidence is not taken down in writing by the
Judge, or from his dictation in the open Court, or recorded mechanically in his
presence, he shall be found, as the examination of each witness proceeds, to make a
memorandum of the substance of what each witness deposes, and such memorandum
shall be written and signed by the Judge and shall form part of the record.
When Evidence may be Taken in English
Rule 9 (1) provides that where English is not the language of the Court, but all
the parties to the suit who appear in person, and the pleaders of such of the parties as
appear by pleaders, do not object to having such evidence as is given in English, being
taken down in English, the Judge may so take it down or cause it to be taken down.
Rule 9 (2) provides that where evidence is not given in English but all the parties
who appear in person, and the pleaders of such of the parties as appear by pleaders, do
not object to having such evidence being taken down in English, the Judge may take
down, or cause to be taken down, such evidence in English.
Any Particular Question and Answer may be Taken Down
Rule 10 provides that the Court may, of its own motion or on the application of
any party or his pleader, take down any particular question and answer, or any
objection to any question, if there appears to be any special reason for so doing.
Questions Objected to and Allowed by the Court
Rule 11 provides that where any question put to a witness is objected to by a
party or his pleader, and the court allows the same to be put, the judge shall take down
the question, the answer, the objection and the name of the person making it, together
with the decision of the court.
Remarks on Demeanour of Witnesses
Rule 12 provides that the court may record such remarks as thinks material
respecting the demeanour of any witness while under examination.
Power to Examine Witness Immediately
Rule16 (1) provides that where a witness is about to leave the jurisdiction of the
court, or other sufficient cause is shown to the satisfaction of the court why his
evidence should be taken immediately, the court may, upon application of any party
or of the witness, at any time after the institution of the suit take the evidence of such
witness.
Power of the Court to Inspect
Rule 18 provides that the court may at any stage of a suit inspect any property
or thing concerning which any question may arise and shall as soon as may be
practicable, make a memorandum of any relevant facts observed and such
memorandum shall form part of the record.
Order XVIII of the CPC plays a crucial role in ensuring a fair and orderly trial process
in civil cases. It establishes the procedures for presenting and challenging evidence,
examining witnesses, and making arguments. The court's role in managing the trial
helps maintain the integrity and efficiency of the litigation process, ultimately leading
to a just resolution of the dispute.
TOPIC 18
AFFIDAVITS (Order XIX)
Order XIX of the Code of Civil Procedure (CPC) in India deals with the use of
affidavits in civil litigation. An affidavit is a written statement of facts that is sworn or
affirmed by the deponent, who is usually a party or a witness in a case. Affidavits are
used to provide evidence and present facts to the court. Order XIX establishes the rules
and procedures for the use of affidavits in civil proceedings.
Power to Order any Point to be Proved by Affidavit
Rule 1 provides that any court may at any time for sufficient reason order that
any particular fact or facts may be proved by affidavit or that the affidavit of any
witness may be read at the hearing, on such conditions as the court thinks reasonable.
Proviso to R.1 states that if either party bonafide desires the production of a
witness for cross-examination, and such witness can be produced, the evidence of such
witness shall not be given by affidavit.
Power to Order Attendance of Deponent for Cross-Examination
Rule 2 (1) provides that upon any application, evidence may be given by
affidavit, but the court may, at the instance of either party, order the attendance of the
deponent.
Rule 2 (2) provides that such attendance shall be in Court, unless the deponent
is exempted from personal appearance in Court or the Court otherwise directs.
Matters to which Affidavits shall be Confined
Rule 3 (1) provides that affidavits shall be confined to such facts as the deponent
is able of his own knowledge to prove, except on interlocutory applications, on which
statements of his belief may be admitted provided the grounds are stated.
Rule 3 (2) provides that the costs of every affidavit which shall unnecessarily
set forth matters of hearsay or argumentative matter, or copies of or extracts from
documents, shall ( unless the Court otherwise directs) be paid by the party filing the
same.
Order XIX provides a structured framework for the use of affidavits in civil
proceedings. It balances the need for written evidence with the opportunity for oral
examination and cross-examination when necessary. Affidavits are a vital tool for
presenting facts and evidence in a clear and formal manner, contributing to the fair and
efficient conduct of civil litigation in India.
TOPIC 19
JUDGMENT (Order XX)
Order XX of the Code of Civil Procedure (CPC) in India deals with the pronouncement
of judgments in civil cases. It outlines the procedures that the court must follow when
delivering judgments, including the form and content of judgments, and the rules
related to judgments in cases where there are multiple plaintiffs or defendants.
By virtue of Section 2 (9) of the Code judgment means the statement given by
the judge on the grounds of a decree or order.
131
By S.33, the court, after the case has
been heard, shall pronounce judgment, and on such judgment a decree shall follow.
Judgment when Pronounced
O XX Rule 1 (1) provides that where the judgment is not pronounced at once,
every endeavour shall be made by the court to pronounce the judgment within thirty
days from the date of the conclusion of the hearing of the case.
On the ground of exceptional and extraordinary circumstances, the court shall
fix a future day for the pronouncement of the judgment not beyond sixty days and due
notice shall be given to the parties.
Rule1(2) provides that where a written judgment is to be pronounced, it shall
be sufficient if the findings of the court on each issue and the final orders passed in the
case are read out and not the whole judgment.
Rule 1 (3) provides that the judgment may be pronounced by dictation in open
Court to a shorthand writer if the Judge is specially empowered by the High Court in
his behalf.
Power to Pronounce Judgment Written by Judge’s Predecessor
Rule 2 provides that a judge shall pronounce a judgment written, but not
pronounced, by his predecessor.
Judgment to be Signed
Rule 3 provides that the judgment shall be dated and signed by the judge in open
court at the time of pronouncing it and, when once signed, shall not afterwards be
altered or added to, save as provided by Section152 or on review.
Judgment of Small Cause Courts
Rule 4 (1) provides that judgments of a Court of Small Causes need not contain
more than the points for determination and the decision thereon.
Rule 4 (2) provides that judgments of other Courts shall contain a concise
statement of the case, the points for determination, the decision thereon, and the
reasons for such decision.
131
By virtue of Section 2 (8) judge means the presiding officer of a civil court.
Court to State its Decision on Each Issue
Rule 5 provides that in suits in which issues have been framed, the court shall
state its finding or decision, with reasons, upon each separate issue, unless the finding
upon any one or more of the issue is sufficient for the decision of the suit.
Rule 5A imposes a duty on the court to inform parties as to where an appeal lies
in cases where parties are not represented by pleaders.
132
Order XX is crucial in ensuring the transparency and fairness of the judicial process.
It establishes clear procedures for pronouncing judgments, drafting decrees, and
providing parties with certified copies of these documents. The order also addresses
various scenarios, such as judgments against deceased parties, firms, and joint
defendants, ensuring that the court's decisions are accurately reflected in the decrees
issued.
TOPIC 20
DECREE
In the context of the Code of Civil Procedure (CPC) in India, a "decree" refers to the
formal expression of a judgment or order passed by a civil court at the conclusion of
a civil suit. A decree essentially represents the final determination of the court with
regard to the rights and liabilities of the parties involved in the lawsuit. The
adjudications of civil court may be divided in to two types, viz; decree and order.
Decree
Decree is defined in Section 2(2) of the Code as (i) the formal expression of an
adjudication which, so far as regards the court expressing it; (ii) conclusively; (iii)
determines the rights of the parties; (iv) with regard to all or any of the matters in
controversy; (v) in the suit and may be either preliminary (i.e. when further
proceedings have to be taken before disposal of the suit) or final.
It shall be deemed to include rejection of a plaint and the determination of the
any question within Section 144, but shall not include-
(a) any adjudication from which an appeal lies as an appeal from an order, or
(b) any order of dismissal for default.
132
Also see Rules 6 to 20 of O. XX contained in the Topic “Decree”.
Explanation to the section states that a decree is preliminary when further
proceedings have to be taken before the suit can be completely disposed of. It is final
when such adjudication completely disposes of the suit. It may be partly preliminary
and partly final.
By virtue of S.2 (3) “decree-holder” in whose favour a decree has been passed
or an order capable of execution has been made.
Essential Characteristics of Decree
(1) There must be an adjudication. That means the matter in issue must be heard and
decided by the court.
(2) There must be a formal expression of such adjudication.
(3) Such adjudication must be in a suit.
(4) The adjudication must determine the rights of the parties with regard to all or any of
the matters in controversy in the suit.
(5) Such determination must be conclusive in nature.
(6) Decree can be either preliminary or final.
(7) Rejection of plaint is deemed to be a decree.
(8) The determination of any question within the meaning of Section 144 is also be
deemed to be a decree.
(9) Any adjudication from which an appeal lies as an appeal from an order is not a
decree.
(10) An order of dismissal for default is not a decree.
(1) Adjudication
The decision of a Court will become a decree only if there is adjudication.
Adjudication means a judicial determination of the matter in dispute. If there is no
judicial determination of any matter in dispute, it cannot be considered as a decree.
In Sreedharan v. Bhaskaran
133
, the Kerala High Court held that a decree passed
in a suit on a compromise petition is a decree with in the meaning of S.2(2) of the Code
because the adjudicatory power of the court is to applied by the court.
(1) Formal Expression
There must be formal expression of such adjudication. That means all the
requirements of form must be complied with.
(2) Suit
Adjudication must be in a suit. Every suit is to be instituted by presentation of a
plaint. If there is no civil suit, there is no decree.
In Hansraj v. Dehradun-Mussoorie Electric Tramways Co. Ltd
134
, the Privy
Council was held that the word ‘suit’ ordinarily means a civil proceeding instituted by
the presentation of a plaint.
(3) Determination of Rights of Parties in Controversy
The adjudication must have determined the rights of the parties with regard to
all or any of the matters in controversy in the suit. Here the term parties’ refers to,
parties to the suit.
(4) Conclusive Determination
The determination must be of conclusive nature. That means, the determination
must be final and conclusive as regards the Court which passes it. Thus, an
interlocutory order, which does not determine the rights of the parties finally, cannot
be considered as a decree.
Preliminary Decree and Final decree
A decree may be preliminary or final. A decree may be preliminary when
adjudication decides the rights of the parties with regard to any of the matters in
controversy in the suit, but does not completely disposes of the suit.
The decree may be final when it completely disposes of the suit and finally
settles all questions in controversy between the parties and nothing further remains to
be decided thereafter. Generally, there will be only one final decree in a suit.
133
1986 KLT 102.
134
AIR 1933 PC 63 (64).
In Renu Devi v. mahendra Singh
135
, the court distinguished between a
preliminary and final decree. A preliminary decree merely declares the rights and
shares of the parties and leaves room for some further inquiry to be held and conducted
pursuant to the directions made in the preliminary decree, which inquiry having been
conducted and the rights of the parties finally determined a decree incorporating such
determination needs to be drawn up which is the final decree.
In the following kinds of suits Court may pass preliminary decree:
(1) Suits for partition and separate possession;
(2) Suits for possession and mesne profits;
(3) Suits for foreclosure of a mortgage;
(4) Suits for pre-emption;
(5) Suits for dissolution of partnership;
(6) Suits for redemption of a mortgage.
In Rachakonda Venkat Rao v. R. Satya bai
136
, it was held that a decree may be
partly preliminary and partly final. There can be more than one preliminary decree in
a suit. Similarly in Phool Chand v. Gopal Lal
137
, the Apex Court found that there can
be more than one preliminary decree in the partition suit if circumstances justify the
same.
Sometimes a decree may be partly preliminary and partly final.
138
In Lucy Kochuvareed v. Mariappa Goundar
139
, the suit was for possession of
immovable property and mesne profits. The Court passed a decree for the possession
of the property and directed an enquiry into whether the mesne profits are to be paid.
135
2003 (3) KLT SN 16.
136
2003 (7) SCC 452.
137
AIR 1967 SC 1470.
138
Bhargavi Pillai v. Karthiyiniamma, 1989 (1) KLT 159.
139
AIR 1979 S.C. 1214.
The first part of the decree is final where as the second part is only preliminary, because
the final decree for mesne profits can be drawn only after enquiry and the amount due
is ascertained. Thus, even though the decree is only one, it is partly preliminary and
the partly final.
Following are considered as decrees
(1) Rejection of Plaint
Even though an order rejecting a plaint does not preclude the plaintiff from
presenting a fresh plaint on the same cause of action, the rejection of a plaint shall be
deemed to be a decree.
(2) Return of Plaint
An order returning a plaint to be presented to the proper Court is not a decree.
(3) Restitution
The determination of any question within Section 144 of the Code
140
is a decree.
(4)An order directing to sell the property in a final decree proceedings after passing
preliminary decree for partition of property in an ancillary proceedings amounts to a
decree and is appealable.
141
(5) The order rejecting the plaint for non payment of court fees is a decree.
142
(6) Dismissal of an appeal as time-barred.
143
(7) Order for sale of property on the ground that property is not divisible.
144
(8) Variation of shares which were determined in preliminary decree.
145
(9) The order directing an item to be sold on the ground that it cannot be conveniently
divided is a final adjudication of rights of parties and therefore a preliminary decree
and falls within S.2 (2).
146
140
Section 144 sates that upon the ultimate reversal or variation of a decree or order, the trial court shall
make an order directing the party who received the property or benefit on the erroneous judgment to
the party who was deprived of the property in execution of the decree.
141
Ravindran v. Janardhanan, 2001 (2) KLT 644: 2001 (2) KLJ 53: AIR 2001 Ker.307.
142
Narayani Ammal v. Sanjeev, 2001 (2) KLT 588.
143
Ratan Singh v. Vijay Singh, 2001 (1) SCC 469.
144
Mayimu v. Maliyammal, AIR 1968 Ker.282.
145
Phoolchand v. Gopal, AIR 1967 SC 1470.
146
Nayimu Alias Bambathi Bibi v. Cheria Maliyammal Naimu and Others, 1968 KLT 70.
(10) A decision that the suit has abated will tantamount to a decree for the purpose of
appeal.
147
Following are not considered as decrees
(1) Appealable Orders
The term decree does not include an adjudication from which an appeal lies as
an appeal from an order. Such orders are specified in Sec.104 and Orders 43, Rule 1
of the Code.
(2) Dismissal for Default
An order of dismissal for default is not a decree.
(3) State of Tamil Nadu v. Thangavel
148
, it was held that members of
Administrative Tribunal are not judges. Their statements are to be construed only as
order and not a decree.
Contents of Decree
OXX Rule 6 (1) provides that the decree shall agree with the judgment and it
shall contain the number of the suit, the names and descriptions of the parties, their
registered addresses, the particulars of the claim, and shall specify clearly the relief
granted or other determination of the suit.
Rule 6 (2) provides that the decree shall also state the amount of costs incurred
in the suit, and by whom, or out of what property and in what proportions such costs
are to be paid.
The court may direct that the costs payable to one party by the other shall be set
off against any sum which is admitted or found to be due from the former to the
latter.
149
Preparation of Decree
147
Kalyanikutty Amma v. Ravunn iNair, 1965 KLT 236.
148
AIR 1997 SC 2283.
149
R.6 (3).
Rule 6A provides that decree should be drawn within fifteen days from the date
of pronouncement of the judgment.
Date of Decree
Rule 7 provides that the decree shall bear the date and the day of pronouncement
of the judgment and the judge should satisfy that the decree has been drawn up in
accordance with the judgment and shall sign the decree.
When Judge has Vacated the Office before Signing the Decree
Rule 8 provides that when the judge has vacated the office before signing the
decree, the decree may be signed by his successor. If the court has ceased to exist it is
to be signed by the immediate superior court judge.
Decree for Recovery of Immovable Property
Rule 9 provides that where the subject matter of the suit is immovable property
the decree shall contain a description of such property sufficient to identify the same,
such as its boundaries or numbers in a record of settlement or survey.
Decree for Delivery of Movable Property
Rule 10 provides that where the decree is for the delivery of movable property,
the decree shall also state the amount of money to be paid as an alternative if delivery
cannot be had.
Decree may Direct Payment by Installments
Rule 11 (1) provides that where and in so far as a decree is for the payment of
money, the Court may for any sufficient reason incorporate in the decree, after hearing
such of the parties who had appeared personally or by pleader at the last hearing, before
judgment, an order that payment of the amount decreed shall be postponed or shall be
made by installments, with or without interest, notwithstanding anything contained in
the contract under which the money is payable.
Order, after Decree, for Payment by Installments
Rule 11 (2) provides that after the passing of any such decree the Court may, on
the application of the judgment-debtor and with the consent of the decree-holder, order
that payment of the amount decreed shall be postponed or shall be made by
installments on such terms as to the payment of interest, the attachment of the property
of the judgment-debtor, or the taking of security from him, or otherwise, as it thinks
fit.
Decree for Possession and Mesne Profits
Rule 12 (1) provides that where a suit is for the recovery of possession of
immovable property and for rent or mesne profits, the Court may pass a decree,-
(a) for the possession of the property;
(b) for the rents which have accrued on the property during the period prior to the
institution of the suit or directing an inquiry as to such rent;
(ba) for the mesne profits or directing an inquiry as to such mesne profits;
(c) directing an inquiry as to rent or mesne profits from the institution of the suit until,-
(i) the delivery of possession to the decree-holder,
(ii) the relinquishment of possession by the judgment-debtor with notice to the decree-
holder through the Court, or
(iii) the expiration of three years from the date of the decree, whichever event first occurs.
Rule 12 (2) provides that where an inquiry is directed under clause (b) or clause
(c), a final decree in respect of the rent or mesne profits shall be passed in accordance
with the result of such inquiry.
Decree for Specific Performance of Contract for the Sale or Lease of Immovable
Property
Rule 12A provides that where a decree for the specific performance of a contract
for the sale or lease of immovable property orders that the purchase-money or other
sum be paid by the purchaser or lessee, it shall specify the period within which the
payment shall be made.
Decree in Administration Suit
Rule 13 (1) provides that where a suit is for an account of any property and for
its due administration under the decree of the Court, the Court shall, before passing the
final decree, pass a preliminary decree ordering such accounts and inquiries to be taken
and made, and giving such other directions as it thinks fit.
Rule 13 (2) provides that in the administration by the Court of the property of
any deceased person, if such property proves to be insufficient for the payment in full
of his debts and liabilities, the same rules shall be observed as to the respective rights
of secured and unsecured creditors and as to debts and liabilities provable, and as to
the valuation of annuities and future and contingent liabilities respectively, as may be
in force for the time being, within the local limits of the Court in which the
administration suit is pending with respect to the estates of persons adjudged or
declared insolvent; and all persons who in any such case would be entitled to be paid
out of such property, may come in under the preliminary decree, and make such claims
against the same as they may respectively be entitled to by virtue of this Code.
Decree in Pre-emption Suit
Rule 14 (1) provides that where the Court decrees a claim to pre-emption in
respect of a particular sale of property and the purchase-money has not been paid into
Court, the decree shall-
(a) specify a day on or before which the purchase-money shall be so paid, and
(b) direct that on payment into Court of such purchase-money, together with the costs (if
any) decreed against the plaintiff, on or before the day referred to in clause (a), the
defendant shall deliver possession of the property to the plaintiff, whose title thereto
shall be deemed to have accrued from the date of such payment, but that, if the
purchase-money and the costs (if any) are not so paid, the suit shall be dismissed with
costs.
Rule 14 (2) provides that where the Court has adjudicated upon rival claims to
pre-emption, the decree shall direct,-
(a) if and in so far as the claims decreed are equal in degree, that the claim of each pre-
emptor complying with the provisions of sub-rule (1) shall take effect in respect of a
proportionate share of the property including any proportionate share in respect of
which the claim of any pre-emptor failing to comply with the said provisions would,
but for such default, have taken effect; and
(b) if and in so far as the claims decreed are different in degree, that the claim of the
inferior pre-emptor shall not take effect unless and until the superior pre-emptor has
failed to comply with the said provisions.
Decree in Suit for Dissolution of Partnership
Rule 15 provides that where a suit is for the dissolution of a partnership or the
taking of partnership accounts, the Court, before passing a final decree, may pass a
preliminary decree declaring the proportionate shares of the parties, fixing the day on
which the partnership shall stand dissolved or be deemed to have been dissolved, and
directing such accounts to be taken, and other acts to be done, as it thinks fit.
Decree in Suit for Account between Principal and Agent
Rule 16 provides that in a suit for an account of pecuniary transactions between
a principal and an agent, and in any other suit not hereinbefore provided for, where it
is necessary, in order to ascertain the amount of money due to or from any party, that
an account should be taken, the Court shall, before passing its final decree, pass a
preliminary decree directing such accounts to be taken as it thinks fit.
Special Directions as to Accounts
Rule 17 provides that the Court may either by the decree directing an account to
be taken or by any subsequent order give special directions with regard to the mode in
which the account is to be taken or vouched and in particular may direct that in taking
the account the book of account in which the accounts in question have been kept shall
be taken as prima facie evidence of the truth of the matters therein contained with
liberty to the parties interested to take such objection thereto as they may be advised.
Decree in Suit for Partition of Property or Separate Possession of a Share therein
Rule 18 provides that where the Court passes a decree for the partition of
property or for the separate possession of a share therein, then,-
(1) if and in so far as the decree relates to an estate assessed to the payment of
revenue to the Government, the decree shall declare the rights of the several parties
interested in the property, but shall direct such partition or separation to be made by
the Collector, or any gazetted subordinate of the Collector deputed by him in this
behalf, in accordance with such declaration and with the provisions of Section 54;
(2) if and in so far as such decree relates to any other immovable property or to
movable property, the Court may, if the partition or separation cannot be conveniently
made without further inquiry, pass a preliminary decree declaring the rights of the
several parties, interested in the property and giving such further directions as may be
required.
Decree when Set-off or Counter-claim is Allowed
Rule 19 (1) provides that where the defendant has been allowed a set-off or
counter-claim against the claim of the plaintiff, the decree shall state what amount is
due to the plaintiff and what amount is due to the defendant, and shall be for the
recovery of any sum which appears to be due to either party.
Appeal from Decree Relating to Set-off or Counter-claim
Rule 19 (2) provides that any decree passed in a suit in which a set-off or
counter-claim is claimed shall be subject to the same provisions in respect of appeal to
which it would have been subject if no set-off or counter-claim had been claimed.
Rule 19 (3) provides that the provisions of this rule shall apply whether the set-
off is admissible under rule 6 of Order VIII or otherwise.
Certified Copies of Judgment and Decree to be furnished
Rule 20 provides that certified copies of the judgment and decree shall be
furnished to the parties on application to the Court, and at their expense.
Decrees are essential in the civil litigation process as they represent the final and
binding orders of the court. They provide legal clarity and enforceability to the court's
decisions, allowing parties to assert their rights and seek remedies in accordance with
the court's judgment.
TOPIC 21
ORDER
In the context of the Code of Civil Procedure (CPC) in India, an "order" refers
to a formal written decision or directive issued by a court during the course of civil
litigation. Orders are issued by the court to manage and regulate various aspects of a
case, and they may address procedural matters, evidence, interim relief, and other
issues that arise during the progress of a lawsuit.
Section 2(14) of the Code defines an order as, the formal expression of any
decision of a civil court which is not a decree. An order is also an adjudication of a
court of law. Though decree and order are formal expressions of a decision, an order
does not determine the rights of the parties conclusively.
Orders can be divided into ‘appealable orders’ and ‘non-appealable orders’. An
order can be passed in a suit as well as in an application. Many orders can be passed
in one and the same suit. Orders which are appealable, are given under Sec.104 of the
Code. Except those orders, all other orders passed by a Court are non-appealable and
even in appealable orders, no second appeal can be filed.
The Distinction Between a Decree and an Order is as Follows:-
DECREE ORDER
1. Formal expression 1. Formal expression
2. Appealable 2. All orders are not appealable
3. Second appeal lies u/S. 100 3. No second appeal
4. Conclusively determines the rights of 4. May or may not finally
the parties . determine the rights.
5. Originates from a plaint 5. Originates from a plaint or
application
6. Adjudication of a court of law 6. Adjudication of a court of law
7. May be preliminary or final 7. No such distinction
8. Only one final decree in one suit 8. Many orders can be passed in
one suit
9. Appealability is the rule and non- 9. Non appealability is the rule
appealability is the exception . and appealability is the exception
(consent decree is not appealable)
10. There may be two appeals 10. Only one appeal, and that
too in order given u/S.104
and Order XXXXIII Rule 1
Orders in the CPC are crucial for the efficient and fair conduct of civil litigation.
They provide a framework for managing the various aspects of a case, resolving
disputes, and ensuring that parties adhere to the legal process. Whether they pertain
to procedural matters, evidence, or interim relief, orders play a significant role in the
judicial system's functioning.
TOPIC 22
COST, COMPENSATORY COST AND
COSTS FOR DELAY (Order XXXX, Section 35)
Costs are in the nature of incidental damages granted to a successful party to
make good his expenses for contesting his case before the court. It is a sum prescribed
by law as charge incurred by a party to a case. The discretion of the court is very wide
in awarding costs.
This section gives power to court toward costs even against who are not parties
to suit. Supreme Court held that in suitable cases a lawyer could be directed to pay the
costs.
The object of awarding costs is to secure to a litigant the expenses incurred by
him and not to punish the opposite party. The successful party may be deprived of cost
where there is misconduct on his part.
New Order XXXXA gives certain items of expenditure including expenses
relating to notice or typing, writing, printing charges etc. to be included in the costs of
the suit. While awarding costs, the court shall use its discretion to determine by whom
costs are to be paid.
Normally an Appellate Court does not interfere with the decree for costs. If the
decree for costs is unreasonable or if it satisfied that the discretion has not been
judicially exercised by the lower court or by an erroneous view of the law, then the
Appellate Court can interfere.
Compensatory Costs (Sec.35A)
Sec.35A says, the object of awarding costs is not to punish the party or to impose
a penalty upon him. But S.35A is an exception to S.35. The object of this section is to
discourage false and vexatious claims. The claims or defence must be either
disallowed, abandoned or withdrawn. Then the court should think it fit to make an
order for payment of compensatory costs by the person who makes the claim or
defence.
Costs for Causing Delay
Sec.35B gives power to the court to make an order requiring a party to pay to
the other party such costs for causing delay in proceeding with the suit. The section
gives discretion to the court to impose compensatory costs on parties who are
responsible for delaying the matter. Payment of costs has been made a condition
precedent to the further prosecution of the suit.
The court has power to extend time for payment of costs.
TOPIC 23
EXECUTION OF DECREES AND ORDERS (Order XXI)
Order XXI of the Code of Civil Procedure (CPC) in India governs the
execution of decrees and orders issued by civil courts. Execution is the process by
which a decree or order is enforced to ensure that the rights and obligations established
by the court are carried out.
Execution means enforcement of decrees and orders by process of the court, so
as to enable the judgment-creditor to recover the fruits of the judgment. The execution
proceedings are independent proceedings from the ordinary proceedings of the suit.
Every decree and every order passed by the court are executable. The decree holder
should initiate execution proceedings against the judgment debtor.
‘A’ files a suit against ‘B’ to recover Rs.10,000/-. The court passed an order to
recover it. The judgment-creditor has executed this decree for the purpose of recovery.
Thus execution means the enforcement of the decrees and orders by the process of the
court so as to enable the judgment-creditor to recover the fruits of the judgment passed
in his favour.
The decree to be executed is the decree of the court of the first instance, if no
appeal is preferred. If an appeal is preferred the decree is also be executed by the
Appellate Court (Court which passed the decree).
Procedure
Order XXI, Rule 2 provides that every decree to be executed must be only in the
manner specified and on the basis of an application to that behalf.
1) It must contain the number of the suit;
2) The names of the parties, the date of the decree;
3) Whether an appeal has been preferred;
4) What payment or other adjustment of the matter in controversy has been made between
the parties subsequently to the decree;
5) Whether previous application has been made for the execution of the decree;
6) The amount with interest (if any) due upon the decree;
7) The amount of cost, (if any) awarded;
8) The names of the person against whom the execution of the decree is sought to be
enforced;
9) The mode in which the assistance of the court is required, whether-
(i) by the delivery of any property specifically decreed;
(ii) by the attachment, or by the attachment and sale, or by the sale without attachment, of
any property;
(iii) by the arrest and detention in prison of any person;
(iv) by the appointment of a receiver;
(v) otherwise, as the nature of the relief granted may require.
Application for Execution
It is only on the application of the decree holder that the court can enforce
execution. Every application for the execution of a decree shall be in writing signed
and verified by the applicant. A certified copy of the decree has to be filed along with
the application.
150
If the application for execution is made more than one year after the
date of the decree, the court executing the decree shall issue a notice to the opposite
party/Judgment Debtor.
Notice
The law does not require any notice to be issued to the party against whom
execution is applied. This rule contains four exceptions:-
1) Where an application for execution is made more than one year after the date of the
decree;
2) Where an application for execution is made against the legal representative of the
judgment debtor;
3) Where an application for execution is made of a decree passed by the courts of the
U.K. or any reciprocal territory;
4) When an application is for the execution of a decree of the payment of the money by
the arrest and detention of a judgment-debtor in the civil prison.
Sec.38 lays down the general principle that a decree may be executed either by
the court which passed it or by the court which sends for the execution. The executing
150
R.11 (3).
court has no power to entertain any objection as to the validity of the decree or as to
the legality or correctness of the decree. A decree must be given finally. There is only
one circumstance in which the executing court can decide the legality of the decree. ie.
the court which passed the decree has no jurisdiction to pass such a decree.
In Karan Singh v. Chaman Paswan
151
, the Supreme Court confirmed that a
decree passed by the court without jurisdiction is a nullity and its invalidity can be set
up at any action, including the stage of its execution.
Mode of Execution
An execution can be effected by any one of the following methods:-
1) By delivery of the property;
2) By arrest and detention in prison;
3) By attachment of property;
4) By attachment and detention;
5) In such other manner as the nature of the relief granted may require (Partition);
A. Delivery of Property
1. Movable Property
152
If the decree is for any specific movable property, it may be executed-
(a) by seizure and delivery of the property: or
(b) by detention of the judgment-debtor; or
(c) by the attachment of his property; or
(d) by attachment and detention both.
To apply R.XXXI the property must be in the possession of the judgment-
debtor. That means if the property is in the possession of a third party, the provisions
of this rule do not apply.
2. Immovable Property
153
151
1955.
152
S.51 (a), R.XXX1.
153
Rule 35 and 36.
Rules 35 and 36 provide the mode of executing decrees for possession of
immovable property. If the decree is for immovable property in the possession of the
judgment-debtor or in the possession of the person bound by the decree, it can be
executed by removing the judgment-debtor or any person bound by the decree and by
delivering the possession thereof to the decree holder.
B. Appointment of Receiver
154
One of the modes of execution of a decree is the appointment of a receiver.
Execution by appointment of a receiver is known as equitable execution and is entirely
within the discretion of the court . It cannot be claimed as of right. It is an exception
to the general rule that it is for the decree-holder to choose the mode of execution and
that the court has no power to refuse the mode chosen by him. The appointment of
receiver in execution proceedings is considered to be an exceptional remedy and a very
strong case must be made out in support of it. The decree-holder before resorting to
this mode must show that there is no effective remedy for obtaining relief by the usual
statutory modes of execution. The court also must be satisfied that the appointment of
receiver is likely to benefit the decree-holder and the judgment-debtor rather than a
sale of the attached property. This mode of execution cannot be resorted to in order to
circumvent the statutory provisions. Thus, the decree-holder cannot be permitted to
pray for the appointment of receiver in respect of the property which has been
expressly excluded from the attachment by the statute.
C. Arrest and Detention
One of the modes of executing decree is arrest and detention in civil prison of
the judgment-debtor. Section 55 to 59 and Rules 37 to 41 of Order 21 deal with arrest
and detention of the judgment debtor in civil prison.
If the decree is for payment of money and the application is made for arrest and
detention of the judgment-debtor the court shall, instead of issuing a warrant for arrest,
issue a notice calling upon the judgment-debtor to appear and show cause why he
should not be committed to civil prison in execution of the decree (Rule 37).
154
Section 51 (d).
If the judgment-debtor appears but fails to show cause to the satisfaction of the
court against the arrest and detention, the court may, subject to the provisions of the
Code, make an order of detention.
If the judgment-debtor does not appear in obedience to the notice under Rule
37, the court shall, if the decree-holders so requires, issue a warrant for the arrest of
the judgment-debtor.
A judgment-debtor may be arrested at any time and on any day in execution of
a decree. After his arrest, he must be brought before the court as soon as practicable.
For the purpose of making arrest, no dwelling house may be entered after sunset or
before sunrise.
155
Further, no outer door a dwelling house may be broken open unless
such dwelling house is in the occupancy of the judgment-debtor and he refuses or
prevents access thereto.
156
Again, where the room is in the actual occupancy of a
pardanashin woman who is not the judgment-debtor, reasonable time and facility
should be given to her to withdraw there from.
157
No order of detention of the judgment-debtor shall be made where the decretal
amount does not exceed rupees two thousand. No judgment-debtor may be arrested
unless and until the decree holder pays into court the subsistence allowance as fixed
by the court. If the judgment-debtor pays the decretal amount and costs of arrest to the
officer, he should be released at once.
Who cannot be Arrested
158
The following classes of persons cannot be arrested or detained in civil prison:
1. A woman.
2. Judicial officers, while going to, presiding in, or returning from their courts.
3. The parties, their pleaders, mukhtars, revenue agents and recognized agents and their
witness acting in obedience to a summons, while going to, or attending or returning
from the court.
4. Members of Parliament and State legislative Assemblies, during the continuance of
any meeting of such House and during the forty days before and after such meeting.
155
proviso I to S.55 (1).
156
Proviso II to S.55 (1).
157
Proviso III to S.55 (1).
158
Section 56, 135 and 135A.
Period of Detention
159
(1) No order for detention of the judgment-debtor in civil prison in execution of a decree
for the payment of money shall be made if the total amount of the decree does not
exceed two thousand rupees.
(2) If the decretal amount exceeds rupees two thousand but does not exceed rupees five
thousand, the period of detention of the judgment-debtor in the civil prison shall not
exceed six weeks.
160
(3) If the decretal amount exceeds rupees five thousand, the period of detention of the
judgment-debtor in the civil prison shall not exceed three months.
161
Release of Judgment-Debtor
162
A judgment-debtor may be released from detention in the following
circumstances:
By virtue of S.58 (1) a judgment-debtor shall be released before the expiry of
the period of detention on the following grounds-
(a) The amount mentioned in the warrant is paid.
(b) The decree against him is otherwise fully satisfied.
(c) The decree-holder made a request.
(d) The decree-holder failed to pay subsistence allowance.
R.58 (2) provides that a judgment-debtor released from detention under this
section shall not merely by reason of his release be discharged from his debt, but he
shall not be liable to be re-arrested under the decree in execution of which he was
detained in the civil prison.
Release on Ground of Illness
R.59 (1) provides that at any time after a warrant for the arrest of a judgment-
debtor has been issued the court may cancel it on the ground of his serious illness.
159
Section58.
160
S.58 (1) (b).
161
S.58 (1) (a).
162
Section 58, 59.
R.59 (2) provides that where a judgment-debtor has been arrested, the court may
release him, if, in its opinion, he is not in a fit state of health to be detained in the civil
prison.
R.59 (3) provides that where judgment-debtor has been committed to the civil
prison, he may be released therefrom-
(a) by the State Government, on the ground of the existence of any infectious or
contagious disease, or
(b) by the committing Court, or any Court to which that Court is subordinate, on
the ground of his suffering from any serious illness.
R.59 (4) provides that a judgment-debtor released under this section may be re-
arrested, but the period of his detention in the civil prison shall not in the aggregate
exceed that prescribed by section 58.
E. Attachment of Property
The court can execute a decree by attachment of property of the judgment
debtor. The underlying object of attachment of the property is to give notice to the
judgment-debtor not to alienate his property to anyone and also to the general public
not to purchase or deal with the property of the judgment-debtor attached in execution
proceeding.
Section 60 to 64 and Rules 41 to 59 of Order 21 deal with the attachment of
property.
Property which can be Attached
163
Section 60 declares what properties are liable to attachment and sale in execution
of a decree, and what properties are exempt therefrom.
All saleable property (movable or immovable) belonging to the judgment-debtor
may be attached and sold in execution of a decree against him.
F. Sale of Property
Any court executing a decree may order that any property attached by it and
liable to sale, be sold, and the proceeds of such sale, or a sufficient portion thereof,
shall be paid to the party entitled under the decree to receive the same. According to
163
Section 60.
R.65 of O.XXI every sale in execution of a decree shall be conducted by an officer of
the court or by such other person as the court may appoint in this behalf in public
auction.
In Sagar Mahila Vidhyalaya v. Pandit Sadasiv Rao
164
, auction sale in the name
of the highest bidder was confirmed. Sale certificate was issued in the name of a society
which has alleged to be the real owner. It was held that Judgment-debtor cannot
challenge the right of the society by means of a suit after long lapse of time.
Proclamation of Sale
165
S.66 (1) of provides that after the property is attached and ordered to be sold by
public auction, the first step to be taken by the court is to cause a proclamation of the
intended sale to be made in the language of such court.
S.66 (2) of provides that such proclamation shall be drawn up after the notice to
the decree-holder and the judgment-debtor and state the following details;
1. time and place of sale;
2. property or a part thereof to be sold;
3. revenue, if any, assessed upon the property;
4. encumbrance, if any, to which the property is liable;
5. amount to be recovered;
6. such other particulars which the Court considers material for a
purchaser to know in order to judge the nature and value of the
property.
Every proclamation of sale shall be made by beat of drum or other customary
mode and a copy of the proclamation must be affixed on a conspicuous part of the
property and of the court house and also in the Collector’s office if the property is land
paying revenue.
S.67 (2) of the Act provides that such proclamation should also be published in
the Official Gazette or in a local news paper, or in both, if the Court so directs.
Time of Sale
164
AIR 1991 SC 8125.
165
Rule 66-67.
S.68 of the Act provides that no sale without the consent in writing of the
judgment-debtor can take place before fifteen days in cases of immovable property and
before seven days in case of movable property from the date of proclamation in the
court house.
Adjournment of Sale
The court may, in the discretion, adjourn any sale to a specified day and hour.
But if such sale is adjourned to more than thirty days, a fresh proclamation should be
made unless the judgment-debtor waives it.
Restrictions to Bid
1) A decree holder cannot, without the express permission of the court purchase
the property sold in execution of his own decree.
2) A mortgagee of immovable property cannot, without the leave of the court,
purchase the property sold in execution of a decree on the mortgage.
3) any officer or other person having any duty to perform in connection with any
execution sale, cannot, either directly or indirectly bid for, acquire or attempt to acquire
any interest in the property sold in execution.
Sale of Moveable Property
Sale of all moveable properties in execution of a decree should ordinarily be
held at some place within the jurisdiction of the court ordering such sale.
Price of the property shall be paid at the time of sale. On payment of price, the
sale becomes absolute. Confirmation of such sale by the court is not necessary as in
the case of sale of immovable property. In case of default by the purchaser in payment
of price, the property will forthwith be resold and the defaulting purchaser would be
liable for the deficiency in price on such resale.
Sale of Immovable Property
Any court other than a Court of Small Cause may order sale of immoveable
property in execution of a decree.
The court may postpone sale to enable the judgment-debtor to raise the decretal
amount by private alienation, such as, mortgage, charge, lease etc. The chief object of
provision is to prevent sale of the property of the judgment-debtor in cases where the
decree can be satisfied by private alienation of such property.
Immediately after the sale of immovable property, the person declared to be
purchaser of the property must deposit 25 per cent of the purchase money, unless such
requirement is dispensed with by the court. The provision regarding the deposit is
mandatory and non-compliance with it will make the sale a nullity. In case of failure
on the part of the purchaser to deposit the amount, the property will forthwith be resold
and the defaulting purchaser will be liable for the deficiency in price. The balance of
the purchase-money must be paid by the purchaser within fifteen days from the date
of the sale. In case of default of payment of price by the auction-purchaser, the amount
of deposit can be forfeited and the property shall be resold after issuing a fresh
notification. The provision requiring the auction purchaser to deposit the balance
amount within fifteen days of the sale is also mandatory and non-compliance with the
same vitiates the sale. The court has no jurisdiction to extend the time for the payment
of the balance price.
Setting Aside of Sale
Provisions regarding setting aside of sale are contained in Rules 89 to 91. When
a property is sold in execution of a decree, an application for setting aside sale may be
made under these provisions by the persons and the grounds mentioned therein. Such
application has to be made within the prescribed period of limitation.
1. On Deposit
Rule 89 deals with the setting aside of sale of immovable property on the deposit
of the amount specified in the proclamation of sale. The object of this rule is to give a
judgment-debtor the last chance of getting the sale set aside before it is confirmed by
the court. It is intended to afford an opportunity to the judgment-debtor, even after the
property is sold, to satisfy the claim of the decree-holder and to compensate the
auction-purchaser by paying him five per cent of the purchase-money.
166
The following persons can apply for setting aside this sale.
1. a judgment-debtor;
2. a co-sharer in the property;
3. a member of the Joint Hindu Family;
166
Tribhovandas v. Ratilal, AIR 1968 SC 372.
4. a reversioner;
5. an attaching creditor;
6. a beneficial owner;
7. a lessee;
8. a mortgagee;
9. a person in possession of the property;
10. a benamidar, transferee, etc.
Rule 89, requires that two primary conditions relating to deposit must be
fulfilled; namely, (i) the applicant must deposit in the court for payment to the auction-
purchaser five per cent of the purchase-money; and (ii) he must also deposit the amount
specified in the proclamation of sale. Such deposit must be unconditional and not under
protest. Further, it must be in cash and not by cheque or Govt. promissory note.
An application to set aside a sale must be made within a period of sixty days
from the date of the sale.
Before an order setting aside a sale is made, notice of the application must be
given to all persons likely to be affected by the order thereon.
An order setting aside sale or refusing to set aside a sale is appealable.
2. For Irregularity or Fraud
A sale of immovable property in execution can be set aside on the ground of
material irregularity or fraud in publishing or conducting the sale, provided the
applicant proves that he has sustained substantial injury by reason of such irregularity
or fraud.
167
The following persons have been judicially held entitled to apply under this rule:
(1) the decree-holder;
(2) the auction-purchaser;
(3) any person entitled to share in a rateable distribution of assets;
167
Lakshmiratan Engg. Works v. Asstt. Commr, AIR 1968 SC 488.
(4) any person whose interests are affected by the sale; e.g. a judgment-debtor, legal
representatives of a deceased judgment-debtor, a real owner of the property sold in
execution of a decree against his benamidar; where the judgment-debtor is a minor, his
guardian; where the judgment-debtor is a ward of court, court of ward; a purchaser
from the judgment-debtor pendent elite, etc.
Before a sale can be set aside under this rule, it must be shown that-
a. there has been a material irregularity or fraud in publishing and conducting sale; and
b. Substantial injury had been caused to the applicant.
Material Irregularity
The expression “Material Irregularity” refers to an irregularity on the part of the
court or its officers in the procedure to be followed before the property is put to sale.
The following irregularities have been held to be material irregularities.
a. omission to issue notice;
b. omission to publish sale proclamation;
c. omission to mention prior encumbrances in proclamation;
d. omission to state the revenue or rent payable on the land;
e. omission to beat drum;
f. omission to give survey number of the property;
g. omission to hold sale at stated time and place;
h. sale after an order of stay of execution;
i. sale after satisfaction of the decree.
Fraud
“Fraud” means that “which is dishonest and morally wrong”. Such fraud must
be in publishing or conducting the sale. Fraud must be established beyond reasonable
doubt by clear and cogent evidence; general and vague allegations and suspicious
circumstances are not enough. The onus of proving fraud is on the party alleging it.
Substantial Injury
A sale cannot be set aside by mere irregularity or fraud in publishing or
conducting the same. The applicant must also prove that he had sustained substantial
injury by reason of such irregularity or fraud. Mere loss is not enough, it must be
substantial. Since the burden of proving substantial injury is on the applicant, it should
be alleged in the application.
Limitation
An application to set aside a sale must be made within a period of sixty days
from the date of the sale.
Notice
Before an order setting aside a sale is made, notice of the application must be
given to all persons likely to be affected by the order thereon.
Appeal
An order setting aside sale or refusing to set aside a sale is appealable.
3. Judgment-debtor Having no Saleable interest
Rule 91 enables the auction-purchaser to apply for setting aside the sale on the
ground that the judgment-debtor had no saleable interest in the property.
It is only the auction-purchaser who can apply under this rule. A decree-holder
auction purchaser can also apply. A judgment-debtor cannot apply under this rule.
An application to set aside a sale must be made within a period of sixty days
from the date of the sale.
Before an order setting aside a sale is made, notice of the application must be
given to all persons likely to be affected by the order thereon.
An order setting aside sale or refusing to set aside a sale is appealable.
Where a sale of immovable property has been set aside, the purchaser is entitled
to refund of the purchase-money paid by him with or without interest as ordered by the
court. An application under this rule can be filed within three years from the date of
the order setting aside the sale.
Certificate of Sale
After the sale has become absolute, the court shall grant a certificate in favour
of the purchaser. It shall bear the date on which the sale became absolute and also
specify the property sold and the name of the purchaser.
Issuance of certificate is merely a formal declaration by the court and neither
extinguishes nor creates any title. The object of such certificate is to avoid any
controversy regarding the identity of the property sold and the purchaser thereof and
the date when the sale became absolute.
Effect of Sale
After the sale has become absolute, the property shall be deemed to have vested
the purchaser from the date when it is sold and not from the date when the sale becomes
absolute. In other words, the purchaser’s title relates back to the date of the sale and
not the confirmation of sale.
In Mahadeo Singh v. Ram Lochan
168
, the Supreme Court ruled that by virtue of
S.51 of CPC the court has the discretion in regard to mode of execution of decree. A
decree holder gets the right to execute a decree only in accordance with the procedure
provided by law in force at the time when the execution is sought. The Supreme Court
pointed out that where mode changes at the time of execution of the decree, the
changed procedure will operate for execution.
What Properties cannot be Attached? (S. 60)
It may be noted that a civil court has no power to pass an order for attachment
of all types of property. Certain types of properties are not attachable in execution of
a decree. (Sec.55, 56, 59)
(1) The necessary wearing apparels, cooking vessels, weddings ornaments of the judgment
debtor, his wife, children and such personal ornaments as, in accordance with religious
usage, cannot be parted with by any woman;
In Appana v. Thankama, the court ruled that a ‘Thali’ of a married woman
cannot be attached.
(2) Tools of artisans cannot be attached just like cattle and seed grains. The Supreme Court
ruled that a musician is not an artisan whereas a tailor is an artisan. The word ‘Tool’
will include a tractor as far as an agriculturist is concerned;
168
1980.
(3) Books of account;
(4) Houses and other buildings belonging to an agriculturist or a domestic servant;
(5) A mere right to sue for damages;
(6) Any right of personal service;
(7) Salary to the extent of the first one thousand
169
rupees and two thirds of the remainder
in execution of any decrees other than a decree for maintenance. The relevant Labour
Law also protect the gratuity and bonus from attachment;
In Union of India v. Kurisummootil St. George Chitti Fund
170
, the Supreme
Court ruled that the exemption is only for salary and not for arrears of salary and
therefore arrears of salary is attachable.
(8) Pay and allowances of the person working in Air Force, Army and Navy;
(9) All compulsory deposits like Provident Fund etc.;
(10) Same is the position with regard to life insurance;
(11) Any expectancy of succession by survivorship;
(12) Right to future maintenance;
(13) Stipends and gratuities allowed to pensioners of the Government or of a local authority,
or of any other employer, or payable out of any service family pension fund and
political pensions;
(14) The interest of a lessee of a residential building to which the provisions of law for the
time being in force relating to control of rents and accommodation apply;
(15) Any allowance forming part of the emoluments of a Government Servant or of a
railway or local authority which the Government to be exempt from attachment;
(16) Any allowance declared by an Indian Law to be exempt from attachment or sale in
execution of a decree;
(17) Where the judgment-debtor is liable for payment of land revenue, any moveable
property which, under any law is exempt from sale for the recovery of an arrear of
such revenue.
Stay of Execution
169
Before the coming into effect of 1999 Amendment was to the extent of Rs.400/-.
170
1930.
According to Order XXI, Rule 26 of the Code, if sufficient cause is shown, the
court to which a decree has been send for execution can stay the execution of the decree
for a reasonable time. However before granting a stay, the court must require such
security or impose such conditions upon the judgment-debtor.
Similarly if a suit is pending against the holder of a decree, the court may stay
the execution of the decree.
Execution in Case of Cross-Decree
Rule 18 (1) provides that where applications are made to a court for the
execution of cross decrees in separate suits for the payment of two sums of money
passed between the parties and capable of execution at the same time by such court,-
(a) If the two sums are equal, satisfaction shall be entered upon both decrees; and
(b) If the two sums are unequal, execution may be taken out only by the holder of the
decree for the higher sum, and for so much only as remains after deducting the smaller
sum, and satisfaction for the smaller sum shall be entered on the decree for the larger
sum as well as satisfaction on the decree for the smaller sum.
Rule 18 (2) provides that this rule shall be deemed to apply where either party
is an assignee of one of the decrees and as well in respect of judgment-debts due by
the original assignor as in respect of judgment- debts due by the assignee himself.
Rule 18 (3) provides that this rule shall not apply unless-
(a) a decree holder in one of the suits in which the decrees have been made is the judgment
debtor in the other and each party fills the same character in both suits; and
(b) The sums due under the decrees are definite.
Rule 18 (4) provides that the holder of a decree passed against several persons
jointly and severally may treat it as a cross decree in relation to a decree passed against
him singly in favour of one or more of such persons
Execution in Case of Cross Claims under Same Decree
Rule 19 provides that where application is made to a court for the execution of
a decree under which two parties are entitled to recover sums of money from each
other, then-
(a) If the two sums are equal, satisfaction for both shall be entered upon the decree; and
(b) If the two sums are unequal, execution may be taken out only by the party entitled to
the larger sum and for so much only as remains after deducting the smaller sum, and
satisfaction for the smaller sum shall be entered up on the decree.
Cross- Decrees and Cross-Claims in Mortgage Suits
Rule 20 provides that the provisions contained in rules 18 and 19 shall apply to
decrees for sale in enforcement of a mortgage or charge.
Simultaneous Execution
Rule 21 provides that the Court may, in its discretion, refuse execution at the
same time against the person and property of the judgment-debtor.
Notice to Show Cause against Execution in Certain Cases
Rule 22 (1) provides that where an application for execution is made
(a) more than two years after the date of the decree,
(b) against the legal representatives of a party to a decree or where an application is filed
under provisions of S. 44A,
(c) against the assignee or receiver in insolvency, where the party to the decree has been
adjudged to be an insolvent.
A notice shall be issued to the person against whom execution is applied
requiring him to show cause why the decree should not be executed against him.
No such notice shall be necessary in consequence of more than two years having
elapsed between the date of the decree and the application for execution if the
application is made within two years from the date of the last order against the party
against whom execution is applied for, made on any previous application for
execution, or in consequence of the application being made against the legal
representatives of the judgment-debtor if upon a previous application for execution
against the same person the Court has ordered execution to issue against him.
According to R.22 (2), nothing in the forgoing sub-rule shall be deemed to
preclude the Court from issuing any process in execution of a decree without issuing
the notice thereby prescribed, if for reason to be recorded, it considers that the issue of
such notice would cause unreasonable delay or would defeat the ends of justice.
Order XXI provides a comprehensive framework for the enforcement of decrees and
orders issued by civil courts in India. It ensures that the rights and obligations
established by the court are upheld and that parties comply with the court's directives
through various modes of execution. The specific mode of execution depends on the
nature of the decree or order and the circumstances of the case.
TOPIC 24
PERCEPT
Percept is a rule of conduct. Upon the application of the decree holder, the court
which passed the decree may issue percept to any other court which would be
competent to execute such a decree to attach any property belonging to the debtor and
is specified in the percept. A decree holder can apply for percept only after the decree
and not before the decree. It is virtually an order of attachment. But for an attachment
before judgment under Order XXXVIII, Rule 5 applicant cannot pray for an order of
percept in the plaint.
When an application is filed for percept, the court issuing it cannot attach the
property itself. The court sends the percept to the other court and the court to which
the percept is issued is competent to attach the property. If the decree has already been
transferred to another court for execution even then a percept can be issued by the court
which passed the decree. A transferee court cannot issue a percept. The transferee court
cannot question the validity of the percept; its duty is only to execute the decree. An
order of percept is not appealable.
TOPIC 25
GARNISHEE ORDER (Order XXI Rule 46A)
A garnishee order is a legal order issued by a court that allows a judgment
creditor (the person who has obtained a money judgment against a debtor) to collect
the judgment debt from a third party who owes money to the judgment debtor. In the
context of the Code of Civil Procedure (CPC) in India, garnishee orders are governed
by Order XXI, Rule 46A.
Order XXI, Rule 46A of the Civil Procedure Code deals with Garnishee order. It is an
order relating to the attachment of the debt. The word Garnishee is not defined in CPC.
Garnishee order is an order passed by the court prohibiting the payment of the money
by a debtor, as per a judgment. The order is based upon justice and convenience. In
other words the Garnishee order is an order requiring the debtor of the judgment debtor
to pay the amount to the court.
Illustration
Mr. A has given his house to ‘B’ (Garnishee) to deposit Rs.500/- to the court
until the debt is discharged. On receipt of the order ‘B’ shall deposit the said amount
to the court.
From this it is clear that Garnishee order is a prohibitory order prohibiting a
person not to pay to the judgment debtor but to pay the court. An application from the
judgment creditor is necessary to invoke this power.
It may be noted that where the Garnishee disputes liability, the court may order
that any question or issue necessary for the determination of liability shall be tried as
if it were an issue in or orders as it deems fit.
171
Garnishee orders are a legal mechanism for judgment creditors to recover money owed
to them by diverting payments from third parties who owe money to the judgment
debtor. This process is used to ensure that judgment debts are satisfied when the
judgment debtor is unable or unwilling to pay voluntarily. However, it is subject to
court oversight and the garnishee's right to raise valid objections.
TOPIC 26
COMMISSIONS (Order XXVI)
Order XXVI of the Code of Civil Procedure (CPC) in India pertains to the examination
of witnesses by a commission. It provides a mechanism for taking the testimony of
171
Order XXI, Rule 46 (c).
witnesses who are unable to appear in court physically due to various reasons, such as
residing in a different location, illness, or other legitimate constraints.
Ss.75 to 78 and O.XXVI of CPC deal with Commissions. Commission may be
appointed for the following purposes:
Commissions to Examine Witnesses
Cases in which Court may Issue Commission to Examine Witnesses
Rule 1 provides that any court may in any suit issue a commission for the
examination on interrogatories or otherwise of any person resident within the local
limits of its jurisdiction who is exempted from attending the court or who is from
sickness or infirmity unable to attend it.
The court may, accept a certificate signed by a registered medical practitioner
as evidence of the sickness or infirmity of any person without calling the medical
practitioner as witness.
172
In Andhir Chandra Banerjee. v. Smt. Lilabati Mukherjee
173
, it was held that
application for examination on commission ought to be disposed of by a reasoned
order.
Exemption of Certain woman from Personal Appearance
S.132 (1) provides that women who, according to the customs and manners of
the country, ought not to be compelled to appear in public shall be exempt from
personal appearance in Court.
S.132 (2) provides that nothing herein contained shall be deemed to exempt such
women from arrest in execution of civil process in any case in which the arrest of
women is not prohibited by this code.
In Kunhu Mohammed v. T.K. Ummayithi alias Umma Haji Umma
174
, it was held
that S.132 (1) must be construed as to prevent prejudice to the parties and Courts since
the paramount task of deciding cases on oral evidence of an important party involves
the personalized process of Judge seeking the witness at first hand instead of poring
over the prolix pages of a Commissioner’s report.
172
Explanation to R.1.
173
AIR 1993 Cal 296.
174
1969 KLT 418: 1969 KLJ 468: 1969 KLR 629.
In Katheesakutty v. Ibrayan
175
, it was held that unless it is shown that a
purdanashin lady has completely abandoned purdah exemption from appearance
cannot be denied. If she is infact, a purdanashin lady, she is not deprived of the
statutory protection merely she may have previously appeared in public. In the absence
of finding that she has abandoned Purdah, the Court has no discretion to refuse the
prayer.
In X v. Y
176
, it was held that S.132, CPC cannot be treated as a concession to
some aristocratic families, but is a recognition of universally observed custom. The
exemption is only from personal appearance in Court while holding public hearing and
does not extend to the examination in camera in the chambers of the Judge or in some
other place where both the parties will have equal facilities.
Exemption of other persons
S.133 (1) provides that the following persons shall be entitled to exemption from
personal appearance in Court, namely:-
1. The President of India;
2. The Vice-President of India;
3. The Speaker of the House of the People;
4. The Ministers of the Union;
5. The Judges of the Supreme Court;
6. The Governors of State and the administrators of Union territories;
7. The Speakers of the State Legislative Assemblies;
8. The Chairmen of the State Legislative Councils;
9. The Ministers of State;
10. The Judges of the High Courts; and
11. The persons to whom Section 87B applies.
S.133 (3) provides that where any person claims the privilege of such
exemption, and it is consequently necessary to examine him by commission, he shall
175
1961 KLT 433: 1961 KLJ 502: 19691 (1) KLR 577.
176
1969 KLT SN 30.
pay the costs of that commission, unless the party requiring his evidence pays such
costs.
In Marculline Femado v. Rev. Fr. Bamabas
177
, it was held that person in exalted
position is not entitled to claim exemption from personal appearance and requires to
be examined by commission.
In M. Bhaktavalsalam v. S.V. Swami
178
, it was held that there is no justification
for the exception in S.133 so far as Ministers are concerned. It is not easy to discern
any intelligible nexus between the office of a Minister of State and his exemption from
attendance in Court. If it be that they are as hard worked as to unable to find time to
give evidence in Court then O.26 of CPC could be called in aid.
Order for Commission
Rule 2 provides that order for the issue of a commission for the examination of
a witness may be made by the commission either of its own motion or on the
application of any party to the suit or of the witness to be examined.
Persons for whose Examination Commission maybe Issued
Rule 4 (1) provides that any court may in any suit issue a commission for the
examination on interrogatories or otherwise of-
(a) any person resident beyond the local limits of its jurisdiction;
(b) any person who is about to leave such limits before the date on which he
is required to be examined in court; and
(c) any person in the service of the Government who cannot in the
opinion of the court attend without detriment to the public service:
Rule 4 (2) provides that such commission may be issued to any court, not being
a High Court, within the local limits of whose jurisdiction such person resides or to
any pleader or other person whom the court issuing the commission may appoint.
Rule 4 (3) provides that the court on issuing any commission under this rule
shall direct whether the commission shall be returned to itself or to any subordinate
court.
177
1960 KLT SN 31.
178
1957 KLT SN 94.
Commission for Examination of any Person Resident with the Local Limits
According to S.4A of the Act, notwithstanding anything contained in these rules,
any Court may, in the interest of justice or for the expeditious disposal of the case or
for any other reason, issue commission in any suit for the examination, on
interrogatories or otherwise, of any person within the local limits of its jurisdiction,
and the evidence so recorded shall be read in evidence.
Return of Commissions with Depositions of Witnesses
Rule 7 provides that where a commission has been duly executed, it shall be
returned, together with the evidence taken under it, to the court from which it was
issued, unless the order for issuing the commission has otherwise directed, in which
case the commission shall be returned in terms of such order; and the commission and
the return thereto and the evidence taken under it shall form part of the record of the
suit.
When Depositions may be Read in Evidence
Rule 8 provides that evidence taken under a commission shall not be read as
evidence in the suit without the consent of the party against whom the same is offered,
unless-
(a) the person who gave the evidence is beyond the jurisdiction of the Court, or dead or
unable from sickness or infirmity to attend to be personally examined, or exempted
from personal appearance in Court, or is a person in the service of the Government
who cannot, in the opinion of the Court, attend without detriment to the public service,
or
(b) the Court in its discretion dispenses with the proof of any of the circumstances
mentioned in clause (a), and authorizes the evidence of any person being read as
evidence in the suit, notwithstanding proof that the cause for taking such evidence by
commission has ceased at the time of reading the same.
Commissions to Make Local Investigations
Rule 9 provides that in any suit in which the court deems a local investigation
to be requisite or proper for elucidating any matter in dispute, or of ascertaining the
market value of any property, or the amount of any mesne profits or damages or annual
net profits, the court may issue a commission to such person as it thinks fit directing
him to make such investigation and to report thereon to the court.
Procedure of Commissioner
Rule 10 (1) provides that the commissioner after such local inspection as he
deems necessary and after reducing to writing the evidence taken by him, shall return
such evidence, together with his report in writing signed by him to the court.
Report and Depositions to be Evidence in Suit
Rule 10 (2) provides that commissioner may be examined in person. The report
of the commissioner and the evidence taken by him shall be evidence in the suit and
shall form part of the record and the court, or with the permission of the court, any of
the parties to the suit may examine the commissioner in open court touching any of the
matters referred to him or mentioned in his report, or as to his report, or as to the
manner in which he has made the investigation.
Commissioner may be Examined in Person
Rule 10 (3) provides that where the Court is for any reason dissatisfied with the
proceedings of the commissioner, it may direct such further inquiry to be made as it
shall think fit.
Commission for Scientific Investigation
Rule 10A (1) provides that where any question arising in a suit involves any
scientific investigation which cannot, in the opinion of the Court, be conveniently
conducted before the court, the court may, if it thinks it necessary or expedient in the
interests of justice so to do, issue a commission to such person as it thinks fit directing
him to inquire into such question and report thereon to the court.
179
Commission for Performance of a Ministerial Act
Rule 10B (1) provides that where any question arising in a suit involves the
performance of any ministerial act, which cannot be conveniently performed before
179
Rule 10A (2) provides that the provisions of Rule 10 of this Order shall, as far as may be, apply in
relation to a Commissioner appointed under this rule as they apply in relation to a Commissioner
appointed under Rule 9.
the court the court may issue a commission to such person as it thinks fit directing him
to perform that ministerial act and report thereon to the court.
180
Commission for the Sale of Movable Property
Rule 10C (1) provides that where, in any suit, it becomes necessary to sell any
movable property which is in the custody of the court pending the determination of the
suit, and which cannot be conveniently preserved, the Court may issue a commission
to such person directing him to conduct such sale and report thereon to the court.
181
Rule 10C (3) provides that every such sale shall be held, as far as may be, in
accordance with the procedure prescribed for the sale of movable property in execution
of a decree.
Commission to Examine or Adjust Accounts
According to Rule 11 of the Act in any suit in which an examination or
adjustment of the accounts is necessary, the Court may issue a commission to such
person as it thinks fit directing him to make such examination or adjustment.
Court to Give Commissioner Necessary Instructions
Rule 12 (1) provides that the instructions shall distinctly specify whether the
commissioner is merely to transmit the proceedings which he may hold on the inquiry
or also to report his own opinion on the point referred for his examination.
Proceedings and Report to be Evidence, Court may Direct Further Inquiry
Rule 12 (2) provides that where the court has reason to be dissatisfied with the
proceedings and report it may direct such further inquiry as it shall think fit.
Commission to make Partition of Immovable Property
Rule 13 provides that where a preliminary decree for partition has been passed,
the court may, in any case not provided for in Section 54, issue a commission to make
the partition or separation.
180
Rule 10B (2) provides that the provisions of Rule 10 of this Order shall apply in relation to a
Commissioner appointed under this rule as they apply in relation to a Commissioner appointed under
Rule 9.
181
Rule 10C (2) provides that the provisions of rule 10 of this Order shall apply in relation to a
Commissioner appointed under this rule as they apply in relation to a commissioner appointed under
Rule 9.
Procedure for Commission
Rule 14 (1) provides that the commissioner shall, after necessary inquiry, divide
the property into as many shares as may be directed by the order under which the
commission was issued, and shall allot such shares to the parties and award sums to be
paid for equalizing the value of the shares as directed and authorized by the order under
which the commission was issued.
Rule 14 (2) provides that the commissioner shall then prepare and sign a report
or where the commission was issued to more than one person and they cannot agree,
shall prepare and sign separate reports appointing the share of each party and
distinguishing each share by metes and bounds. Such report or reports shall be annexed
to the commission and transmitted to the court and the court after hearing the
objections shall confirm, vary or set aside the same.
Rule 14 (3) provides that the court shall pass a decree in accordance with
whether the report was confirmed or varied; and where the court sets aside the report
it shall either issue a new commission or pass such other order as it shall think fit.
Expenses of Commission to be Paid into Court
Rule 15 (1) provides that before issuing any commission the Court may order
such sum as it thinks reasonable for the expenses of the commission to be paid within
a time to be fixed, paid into the Court by the party at whose instance or for whose
benefit the commission is issued.
182
Powers of Commissioners
Rule 16 provides that any commissioner, unless otherwise directed by the order
of appointment, may,
(a) examine the parties themselves and any witness whom they or any of
them may produce, and any other person whom the commissioner thinks
proper to call upon to give evidence in the matter referred to him;
182
Rule 15 (2) provides that before executing and returning any commissions issued by foreign Courts
under the provisions of Section 78, the Court or the commissioner required to execute the commission
may levy such fees as the High Court may from time to time prescribe in this behalf in addition to the
fees prescribed for the issue of summons to witness and for expenses of such witnesses under Rule 2 of
Order XVI.
(b) call for and examine documents and other things relevant to the subject of
inquiry;
(c) at any reasonable time enter upon or into any land or building
mentioned in the order.
Questions Objected to before the Commissioner
According to Rule 16A (1) of the Code where any question put to a witness is
objected to by a party or his pleader in proceedings before a Commissioner appointed
under this Order, the commissioner shall take down the question, the answer, the
objections and the name of the party or, as the case may be, the pleader so objecting.
Proviso to Rule16A (1) states that the commissioner shall not take down the
answer to a question which is objected to on the ground of privilege but may continue
with the examination of the witness, leaving the party to get the question of privilege
decided by the court, and, where the Court decides that there is no question of privilege,
the witness may be recalled by the commissioner and examined by him or the witness
may be examined by the Court with regard to the question which was objected to on
the ground of privilege.
According to Rule 16A (2) of the Code no answer taken down under sub-rule
(1) shall be read as evidence in the suit except by the order of the Court.
Attendance and Examination of Witness before Commissioner
According to Rule 17 (1) of the Code the provisions of this Code relating the
summoning, attendance and examination of witness, and to the remuneration of, and
penalties to be imposed upon, witnesses, shall apply to person required to give
evidence or to produce documents under this Order whether the Commission in
execution of which they are so required has been issued by a court situate within or by
a court situate beyond the limits of India, and for the purpose of this rule the
commissioner shall be deemed to be a Civil Court.
Proviso to Rule 17 states that when the commissioner is not a Judge of a Civil
Court, he shall not be competent to impose penalties; but such penalties may be
imposed on the application of such commissioner by the court by which the
commission was issued.
According to Rule 17 (2) of the Code a commissioner may apply to any court
(not being a High Court) within the local limits of whose jurisdiction a witness resides
for the issue of any process which he may find necessary to issue to or against such
witness, and such Court may, in its discretion, issue such process as it considers
reasonable and proper.
Parties to Appear before Commissioner
By virtue of R.18 (1) where a commission is issued under this order, the court
shall direct that the parties to the suit shall appear before the commissioner in person
or by their agents or pleaders.
By virtue of R.18 (2) where all or any of the parties do not so appear, the
commissioner may proceed in their absence.
Application of Order to Execution Proceedings
R.18A provides that the provisions of this order shall apply, so far as may be, to
proceedings in execution of a decree or order.
Court to Fix a Time for Return of Commission
R.18B the Court issuing a commission shall fix a date on or before which the
commission shall be returned to it after execution, and the date so fixed shall not be
extended except where the Court, for reasons to be recorded, is satisfied that there is
sufficient cause for extending the date.
Cases in which High Court may Issue Commission to Examine Witness
Rule 19 (1) provides that if the High Court is satisfied-
(a) that a foreign court situated in a foreign country wishes to obtain the
evidence of a witness in any proceeding before it,
(b) that the proceeding is of a civil nature, and
(c) that the witness is residing within the limits of the High Court’s appellate
jurisdiction,
it may, subject to the provisions of Rule 20, issue a commission for the examination
of such witness.
Rule 19 (2) provides that evidence may be given of the matters specified in
clauses (a), (b), & (c) of sub-rule (1)
(a) by a certificate signed by the Consular Officer of the foreign country of
the highest rank in India and transmitted to the High Court though the Central
Govt., or
(b) by a letter of request issued by the foreign court and transmitted to the
High Court through the Central Govt., or
(c) by a letter of request issued by the foreign court and produced before the
High Court by a party to the proceeding.
Application for Issue of Commission
Rule 20 provides that the High Court may issue a commission under Rule19-
(a) upon application by a party to the proceeding before the foreign court, or
(b) upon the application by a law officer of the State Govt. acting under the instructions
of the State Govt.
To whom Commission may be Issued
Rule 21provides that a commission under Rule 19 may be issued to any court
within the local limits of whose jurisdiction the witness resides, or where the witness
resides within the local limits of the original jurisdiction of the High Court, to any
person whom the court thinks fit to execute the commission.
Issue, Execution and Return of Commissions, and Transmission of Evidence to Foreign
Court
Rule 22 provides that the provisions of R.6, 15, sub-rule (1) of the Rs.16A, 17,
18 and 18B of this Order in so far as they are applicable shall apply to the issue,
execution and return of such commissions, and when any such commission has been
duly executed it shall be returned, together with the evidence taken under it, to the
High Court, which shall forward it to the Central Govt., along with a letter of request
for transmission to the foreign court.
Order XXVI of the CPC is a valuable tool for ensuring that the testimony of witnesses
is obtained, even when they cannot be physically present in court. It allows for the fair
and efficient conduct of legal proceedings by facilitating the examination of witnesses
in a manner that serves the interests of justice.
TOPIC 27
ARREST AND ATTACHMENT
BEFORE JUDGMENT (Section 94&Order XXXVIII)
The provisions related to "Arrest and Attachment Before Judgment" in the Code
of Civil Procedure (CPC) in India primarily pertain to Order XXXVIII, which deals
with the procedure for securing the attendance of the defendant and the attachment of
property before the final judgment is pronounced. Section 94 of the CPC is not directly
related to this topic, but it provides general rule-making powers to the High Courts.
S.94 and O.38 contain the provisions regarding arrest and attachment before
judgment. Normally a creditor can arrest the debtor or can attach his property only as
part of executing decree obtained by him against the debtor. However in certain
circumstances the creditor can move the court for the arrest of the debtor or for the
attachment of his property even before the judgment. The object underlying such
provisions is to prevent any attempt on the part of the creditor to defeat or delay the
creditor from executing the decree which may be passed against the debtor.
Where Defendant may be Called upon to Furnish Security for Appearance
Order XXXVIII, Rule 1 provides that where at any stage of the suit
183
, the court
is satisfied, by affidavit or otherwise-
(a) that the defendant, with intent to delay the plaintiff, or to avoid any process
of the court, or to obstruct or delay the execution of any decree, that may be
passed against him,
(i) has absconded or left the local limits of jurisdiction of the Court, or
(ii) is about to abscond or leave the local limits of jurisdiction of the
Court, or
183
Other than a suit of the nature referred to in S.16, clauses (a) to (d).
(iii) has disposed of or removed from the local limits of jurisdiction of the
Court his property or any part thereof, or
(b) that the defendant is about to leave India under circumstances affording
reasonable probability that the plaintiff will or may thereby be obstructed or
delayed in the execution of any decree that may be passed against the defendant in
the suit,
the court may issue a warrant to arrest the defendant and bring him before the court to
show cause why he should not furnish security, for his appearance.
The defendant shall not be arrested if he pays to the officer entrusted with the
execution of the warrant any sum specified in the warrant sufficient to satisfy the
plaintiff’s claim, and such sum shall be held in deposit by the court until the suit is
disposed of or until further order of the court.
184
Security
Rule 2 (1) provides that where the defendant fails to show cause the court shall
order either to deposit in court money or other property sufficient to answer the claim
of the plaintiff or to furnish security for his appearance at any time.
Rule 2 (2) provides that every surety for the appearance of a defendant shall
bind himself, in default of such appearance, to pay the sum of money which the
defendant may be ordered to pay in the suit.
Procedure on Application by Surety to be Discharged
Rule 3 (1) provides that a surety for the appearance of a defendant may at any
time, apply to the Court to be discharged from his obligation.
Rule 3 (2) provides that on such application, the court shall summon the
defendant to appear or, if it thinks fit, may issue a warrant for his arrest.
Rule 3 (3) provides that on the appearance of the defendant, or on his voluntary
surrender, the surety shall be discharged from his obligation and shall call upon the
defendant to furnish fresh security.
Procedure where Defendant Fails to Furnish Security or Find Fresh Security
Rule 4 (1) provides that where the defendant fails to comply with any order
under R.2 or R.3, the Court may commit him to the civil prison until the decision of
184
Proviso to R.1.
the suit or, where a decree is passed against the defendant, until the decree has been
satisfied.
No person shall be detained in prison in any case, for a longer period than six
months, or for a longer period than six weeks when the amount or value of the subject-
matter of the suit does not exceed fifty rupees:
185
No person shall be detained in prison under this rule after he has complied with
such order.
186
The provisions of O.XXI R.39 as to allowances payable for the subsistence of
judgment-debtors shall apply to all defendants arrested under this order.
187
Attachment before Judgment
Where Defendant may be Called upon to Furnish Security for Production of Property
Rule 5 (1) provides that where, in any stage of the suit, the court is satisfied, by
affidavit or otherwise, that the defendant, with intent to obstruct or delay the execution
of any decree that may be passed against him
a. is about to dispose of the whole or any part of his property, or
b. is about to remove the whole or any part of his property from the local limits of
jurisdiction of the court,
the court may, direct the defendant, within a time fixed by it, either to furnish security,
in such sum as may be specified in the order, to produce and place at the disposal of
the court, when required, the said property or the value of the same, or such portion as
may be sufficient to satisfy the decree, or to appear and show cause why he should not
furnish security.
R.5 (2) provides that the plaintiff shall, unless the Court otherwise directs,
specify the property required to be attached and the estimated value thereof. R.5 (3)
185
Proviso I to R.4 (1).
186
Proviso II to R.4 (1).
187
Rule 4 (2).
provides that the Court may also in the order direct the conditional attachment of the
whole or any portion of the property so specified.
R.5 (4) provides that if an order of attachment is made without complying with
the provisions of sub-rule (1) of this rule, such attachment shall be void.
In Rai Premchand and Others v. P.K.Ahammed and Co.
188
, it was held that an
order of attachment before judgment is one which involves serious adverse civil
consequences as regards the defendants. Hence it is a case decided within the meaning
of S.11 of the Code.
In Varghese v. Varghese
189
, it was held that order rejecting prayer for attachment
can be deemed to be an order under R.5 and not R.6. Hence Revision under S.115 is
maintainable.
In Abdul Jalal v. Mariya financiers
190
, sale deed was executed in favour of a
third party before the date of attachment but registered after date of attachment. It was
held that claim of the third party against the order of attachment is tenable.
In Rajender Singh v.Ramdher Singh and Others
191
, property situate outside the
District. Sending of the attachment order directly to subordinate Judge in another
District and not through the District Court of that District held not vitiate the
attachment order
In Wilson Paul v. Chandy & Another
192
, it was held that when the plaintiff
alleges that the defendant is attempting to dispose of suit property and it is not denied
by the defendants and defendants are not prepared to furnish security, attachment
before judgment can be ordered.
In Hamda Ammal v. Avadiappa Pathar
193
, sale deed was executed prior to
attachment before judgment and was registered after attachment. It was held that sale
shall prevail over attachment.
188
1982 KLN SN 27.
189
2001 (1) KLT 489.
190
AIR 2002 Ker.276.
191
2001 (6) SCC 213.
192
ILR 1998 (3) Ker.637.
193
1991 (1) SCC 715.
In G.K. Prabhakaran & Co. v. David Traders
194
, it was held that if a third party
is aggrieved by an order of attachment before judgment he can move the Court for
inquiry into his claim by invoking S.151, before attachment is effected.
In Mohandas v. Moideenkutty
195
, it was held that once an attachment before
judgment is ordered and effected properly, it will continue in force till completion of
execution or until it is vacated, whichever is earlier except where suit happens to be
dismissed for default.
In Woodys Hotel Pvt. Ltd. v. Prasant Kumar Panigrahy
196
, it was held that Court
may grant attachment with care and caution and not to be granted on mere assertion of
attempt to dispose of or remove the party.
In Saseendran v. Sadanandan
197
, petition was filed under R.5. Objection was
filed by the respondent and the petition was dismissed. It was held that such an order
would fall under R.5. Not under R.6.
In Mohamed Hariss v. Fathima
198
, it was held that an attachment
unaccompanied by an order directing the defendant to furnish security within a
specified period or to appear and show cause why he should not furnish security is a
nullity. It is not a curable irregularity.
In Tony and Another v. Navodaya Enterprises
199
, it was held that once an
attachment at predecretal stage is made, it will continue in force until satisfaction of
the decree or till the attachment is lifted. Even if no order is made regarding
continuance of attachment on dismissing an execution petition the attachment will
subsist.
In Ratnamma v. Govinda Pillai
200
, it was held that the provisions R.5 (1) shall
be complied with stricto senso before effecting attachment of properties of defendant
before judgment.
194
1972 KLT 593.
195
2000 (2) KLT SN 99.
196
1998 (1) KLT 149.
197
2003 (3) KLT 680.
198
1993 (1) KLT 558.
199
ILR 2004 (1) Ker.107.
200
1995 (1) KLT 405.
In Abdul Jalal v. Mariya Financiers
201
, it was held that under a contract of sale
entered into before attachment, the conveyance after attachment in pursuance of the
contract passes on good title in spite of the attachment.
In Saseendran v. Sadanandan
202
, application for interim attachment was
dismissed. It was held that revision under S.115 is not maintainable, but only a petition
under Art.227 of the Constitution.
In GCDA v. Harrisons Malayalam Ltd
203
, it was held that there is no reference
to the form in O.38 R.5. Use of forms in appendix is dealt with under O.48 R.3. The
provision itself provides that the forms given, with such variations as the circumstances
of each case may require, shall be used. Defect in a notice with Form No.5 (Appendix
F) will not render the attachment void.
In Vasu v. Narayanan Namboothiripad
204
, it was held that the court is bound to
consider the question of security and it is only on failure to furnish security that
attachment could be ordered.
In Madhavan Pillai Somanathan Pillai v. State of Kerala
205
, it was held that non-
compliance with the provision depends upon the provision being either mandatory or
directory. If it is the former, non-compliance will make the order void. If it is the latter,
non-compliance will only make the order voidable. The order would be liable to set
aside, but until that is done it will be operative and cannot be ignored or collaterally
attacked.
In Greater Cochin Development Authority v. Harrisons Malayalam Ltd
206
, it
was held that court has power to direct a conditional attachment of the whole or portion
of the property to be attached.
In Pareed Master v. Antony
207
, it was held that the court while construing these
provisions should keep in mind the pragmatic difficulties of a plaintiff. The defendant
201
2002 (2) KLT 107.
202
2003 (3) KLT 680.
203
2000 (2) KLT 152.
204
1961 KLT 946.
205
1965 KLT 983.
206
2002 (1) KLT SN 9.
207
1987 (2) KLT 649.
may try to dispose of the property in clandestine manner. However mere allegation of
the plaintiff is not sufficient to order an attachment before judgment.
In Ouseph Scaria v. Cheriyan Joseph
208
, it was held that preliminary decree
passed is not capable of execution. What judgment under O.38 R.5 contemplates is a
decree capable of execution and not a preliminary decree. In Hamda Ammal v.
Avadiappa Pathar
209
, it was held that the vendee gets rights which will be related back
on registration from the date of execution of sale deed and such rights are protected
under O.38 R.10 CPC read with S.47 of the Registration Act.
In Raja Theatre v. Selvam Financiers
210
, it was held that the right, title and
interest of a partner in a firm is a saleable property and it can be attached and sold.
In Scaria v. Joseph and Others
211
, it was held that when a preliminary decree
under O.21 R.42 has been passed, it is certain that the plaintiff will eventually obtain
a decree for money only the quantum remaining to be determined. The right to obtain
an attachment under O.38 R.5 in respect of the decree yet to be passed is not taken
away.
In Mohammed Hariss v. Fathima
212
, an order calling upon the defendant to
furnish security was not served on him. It was held that failure of the defendant to
enquire about it does not debar him from challenging it. The validity of it could be
raised in execution. Plea of waiver of such right should be alleged and proved.
In Mohammed Hariss v. Fathima
213
, it was held that merely passing of the order
in terms of sub-rule (1) without serving it on the defendant cannot be treated as
substantial compliance with statutory requirements. From No.5 is to be used whenever
order of attachment is passed.
In Unni v. Vijayan
214
, it was held that the rules in the Code regarding attachment
before judgment do not contemplate an attachment without affording the defendant an
opportunity to furnish security or to show cause why he should not furnish security.
208
1971 KLT SN 85.
209
1991 (1) KLTSN 2.
210
1992 (1) KLT SN 25.
211
1965 KLT 341.
212
1993 (1) KLT 558.
213
1993 (1) KLT 558.
214
1983 KLT 927.
Attachment where Cause not Shown or Security not Furnished
R.6 (1) provides that where the defendant fails to show cause why he should not
furnish security, or fails to furnish the security required, within the time fixed by the
Court, the Court may order that the property specified, or such portion thereof as
appears sufficient to satisfy any decree which may be passed in the suit, be attached.
R.6 (2) provides that where the defendant shows such cause or furnishes the
required security, and the property specified or any portion of it has been attached, the
Court shall order the attachment to be withdrawn, or make such other order as it thinks
fit.
In Moidu v. Canara Bank
215
, it was held that in view of the specific provision
that an under O.38 R.6 is appealable, the jurisdiction under S.115 cannot be invoked.
In S. Noordeen v. V.S. Thiru Venkita
216
, it was held that an attachment before
the judgment prevents the owner from creating any encumbrance on the property.
Decree-holder can proceed against the property in execution although the property was
not mentioned in plaint schedule.
In S. Noordeen v. V.S.T. Venkita Reddiar
217
, it was also held that the proceedings
envisaged for adjudication under O.38 R.8 read with O.21 R.58 is a civil proceeding.
When attachment of the properties has been made before the judgment, they become
part of the civil proceeding in the suit.
Mode of making Attachment
R.7 provides that save as otherwise expressly provided, the attachment shall be
made in the manner provided for the attachment of property in execution of a decree.
In Kunhalankutty Haji v. Ravunni Warrier
218
, it was held that when objection to
the attachment was raised, whether the attachment was before judgment or after the
filing of the execution application upon the passing of the decree the Court cannot
avoid adjudication upon such objections.
Adjudication of Claim to Property before Judgment
215
1986 KLT 1031.
216
1996 (3) SCC 289.
217
1996 (1) KLT 761.
218
1981 KLT SN 86.
R.8 provides that where any claim is preferred to property attached before
judgment, such claim shall be adjudicated upon in the manner hereinbefore provided
for the adjudication of claims to property attached in execution of a decree for the
payment of money.
In S. Noordeen v. V.S.T. Venkita Reddiar
219
, it was held that the properties which
are not part of the schedule mentioned in the suit will nonetheless be part of the decree.
Removal of Attachment when Security Furnished or suit Dismissed
R.9 provides that where an order is made for attachment before judgment, the
Court shall order the attachment to be withdrawn when the defendant furnishes the
security required, together with security for the costs of the attachment, or when the
suit is dismissed.
Attachment before Judgment not to Affect Rights of Strangers nor Bar Decree-Holder
from Applying for Sale
Rule 10 provides that attachment before judgment shall not affect the rights,
existing prior to the attachment, of persons not parties to the suit, not bar any person
holding a decree against the defendant from applying for the sale of the property under
attachment in execution of the decree.
Property Attached before Judgment not to be Re-attached in Execution of a Decree
Rule 11 provides that where property is under attachment by virtue of the
provisions of this order, and a decree is subsequently passed in favour of the plaintiff,
it shall not be necessary upon an application for execution of such decree to apply for
a re-attachment of the property.
The purpose of the provisions related to arrest and attachment before judgment is to
prevent a defendant from disposing of their assets to defeat the enforcement of a
potential decree. These provisions provide a legal mechanism to ensure that the
plaintiff's claim is adequately secured during the course of the lawsuit. However, these
measures are subject to certain conditions and safeguards to prevent abuse and
wrongful arrest or attachment.
219
1996 (1) KLT 761.
TOPIC 28
TEMPORARY INJUNCTIONS AND
INTERLOCUTORY ORDERS (Section 94 & Order XXXIX)
Temporary injunctions and interlocutory orders are crucial legal remedies that play a
significant role in civil litigation. They are designed to provide interim relief to parties
involved in a lawsuit before the final judgment is reached. These measures are essential
for preserving the status quo, preventing irreparable harm, and ensuring that the
ultimate judgment is not rendered meaningless.
Section 94 of CPC grants inherent powers to the courts to make orders as may be
necessary for the ends of justice. These inherent powers are to be exercised sparingly
and cautiously and only when there is no specific provision under the CPC governing
a particular situation. In the context of temporary injunctions, this section empowers
the court to issue orders to prevent the abuse of the judicial process and to secure
justice.
Order XXXIX of CPC deals specifically with temporary injunctions and interlocutory
orders. It lays down the procedure and conditions under which a court can grant or
refuse a temporary injunction.
The court must be satisfied that certain conditions are met before granting a temporary
injunction. These conditions include the existence of a prima facie case, the balance of
convenience being in favor of the party seeking the injunction, and the possibility of
irreparable injury if the injunction is not granted. This implies that the party seeking
the injunction must demonstrate that they have a valid case that merits consideration.
It doesn't require a full-fledged trial but enough evidence to establish a strong case on
the face of it. The court considers whether the inconvenience caused by granting the
injunction to one party outweighs the inconvenience caused by denying it to the other
party. This is crucial in maintaining fairness and equity. The party seeking the
injunction must prove that without the injunction, they would suffer harm that cannot
be compensated adequately by damages. In other words, the harm must be irreparable.
Granting or refusing a temporary injunction is a discretionary power of the court. The
court exercises this discretion based on the facts and circumstances of each case.
Apart from temporary injunctions, Order XXXIX also covers other interlocutory
orders like appointment of a receiver, attachment before judgment, and detention,
preservation, inspection, or sale of property. These orders are made to secure the
interests of the parties during the pendency of the suit. The court can modify or vacate
a temporary injunction if circumstances change or if it is found that the injunction was
wrongly granted.The principles governing the grant of temporary injunctions and
interlocutory orders are well-established but can vary in application depending on the
specifics of each case. Additionally, it's crucial for a legal scholar like yourself, boss,
to stay updated with recent judgments and developments in this area of law, as
precedents can shape the interpretation and application of these provisions.
Section 94,
220
Order 39, Rules 1-5 deal with temporary injunctions. An
injunction is a judicial process whereby a party is required to do, or to refrain from
doing, any particular act.
Injunctions are of two types:
1. Temporary Injunction ; and
2. Permanent Injunction.
A permanent injunction restrains a party for ever from doing the specified act
and can be granted only on merits at the conclusion of the trial after hearing both the
parties to the suit. It is contained in Sections 30 to 42 of the Specific Relief Act, 1963.
A temporary or interim injunction, on the other hand, restrains a party
temporarily from doing the specified act only until the disposal of the suit or until the
220
By S.94, in order to prevent the ends of justice from being defeated the Court may, if it is so
prescribed,-
(a) issue a warrant to arrest the defendant and bring him before the Court to show cause why
he should not give security for his appearance, and if he fails to comply with any order
for security commit him to the civil prison;
(b) direct the defendant to furnish security to produce any property belonging to him and to
place the same at the disposal of the Court or order the attachment of any property;
(c) grant a temporary injunction and in case of disobedience commit the person guilty thereof
to the civil prison and order that his property be attached and sold;
(d) appoint a receiver of any property and enforce the performance of his duties by attaching
and selling his property;
(e) make such other interlocutory orders as may appear to the Court to be just and convenient.
further orders of the court. It may be granted at any stage of the suit. It is contained
Order 39 of the Code of Civil Procedure, 1908. The object of granting temporary
injunction is to maintain and preserve status quo at the time of institution of the
proceedings and to prevent any change in it until the final determination of the suit. It
is in the nature of protective relief granted in favour of a party to prevent future possible
injury.
Temporary Injunctions
Cases in which Temporary Injunctions may be Granted
Order XXXIX, Rule 1 provides that where in any suit it is proved by affidavit
or otherwise
(a) that any property in dispute in a suit is in danger of being wasted, damaged
or alienated by any party to the suit, or wrongfully sold in execution of a decree or,
(b) that the defendant threatens, or intends, to remove or dispose of his property,
with a view to defrauding his creditors,
(c) that the defendant threatens to dispossess the plaintiff or otherwise cause
injury to the plaintiff in relation to any property in dispute in the suit,
the court may order to grant a temporary injunction to restrain such act, until the
disposal of the suit or until further orders.
221
Injunction to Restrain Repetition or Continuance of Breach
R.2 (1) provides that in any suit for restraining the defendant from committing
a breach of contract or other injury of any kind, whether compensation is claimed in
the suit or not, the plaintiff may, at any time after the commencement of the suit, and
either before or after judgment, apply to the Court for a temporary injunction to restrain
the defendant from committing the breach of contract or injury complained of, or any
221
For Kerala and Lakshadweep islands,
(i) Rule 1 shall be re-numbered as sub-rule (1) thereof.
(ii) In sub-rule (1) as so re-numbered after the word “wrongfully sold” the words “or
delivered” shall be inserted.
(iii) After sub-rule (1) the following sub-rule shall be inserted, namely: -
(2) In case of disobedience of any order passed under sub-rule (1) the court granting the
injunction may proceed against the person guilty of such disobedience under sub-rule (3) and
(4) of Rule 2 of this Order.
breach of contract or injury of a like kind and arising out of the same contract or
relating to the same property or right.
R.2 (2) provides that the court may by order grant such injunction, on such terms
as to the duration of the injunction, keeping an account, giving security, or otherwise,
as the Court thinks fit.
The power to grant a temporary injunction is in the discretion of the court and
this discretion should be exercised reasonably, judiciously and on sound legal
principles. Injunction should not be lightly granted as it adversely affects the other
side. Before granting the injunction, the court must be satisfied about the following
aspects:
(i) Prima facie Case
The applicant must show a prima facie case in support of the right claimed by
him. The court must be satisfied that there is a bonafide dispute raised by the applicant,
and on the facts before the court there is a probability of the applicant being entitled to
the relief claimed by him. The applicant has to prove the existence of a prima facie
right and infraction of that right.
In Martin Burn Ltd. v. Banerjee
222
, it was found that a prima facie case
means a case which can be said to be established if the evidence which is led in support
of the same were believed.
In Svenska v. Indian Charge Chrome
223
, it was held that a party seeking
injunction from encashing of bank guarantee by the suppliers has to show prima facie
case of established fraud and an irretrievable injury.
(ii) Irreparable Injury
The applicant must satisfy the court that he will suffer irreparable injury if the
injunction as prayed is not granted, and that there is no other remedy open to him by
which he can protect himself or his property from the consequences of apprehended
injury.
222
AIR 1958 SC 79.
223
1994 (1) SCC 502.
In Manohar Lal v. Seth Hirlal
224
, it was held that the expression irreparable
injury does not mean that there should be no possibility of repairing the injury. It only
means that the injury must be a material one, i.e., which cannot be adequately
compensated by damages.
(iii) Balance of Convenience
The applicant must satisfy the court that the balance of convenience must be in
favour of him. The court should try to weigh substantial mischief or injury likely to
cause to the parties to the suit, if the injunction is refused, and compare it with that
which is likely to cause to the opposite party if the injunction is granted.
In Firm Ishardass v. Prakash
225
, it was held that no appeal lies against an order
of injunction passed in exercise of inherent jurisdiction.
In Mahadeo v. Pune Municipal Corporation
226
, it was held that court may
require the plaintiff to execute a bond that in case of failing in the suit he will
adequately compensate the defendant for the loss resulted due to injunction. Pecuniary
jurisdiction of the court is no bar to determination of damage.
In Gujarat Bottling Co. v. Coca Cola
227
, it was held that consideration for
granting injunction apart a party must not be at fault, should not be responsible for
bringing state of things complained against, unfair or inequitable in his dealings. These
considerations will weigh against person asking for injunction as also person asking to
vacate temporary or interim injunction.
In George v. State
228
, it was held that all that the court has to see that on the face
of it the person applying for injunction has a case which needs consideration and which
is not bound to fail by virtue of some apparent defects.
In Kochu Pennu v. Velutha Kunju
229
, it was held that police assistance will not
be given to enforce ad interim ex-parte order. It shall be given to enforce only the final
order.
224
AIR 1962 SC 527.
225
AIR 1969 SC 938.
226
1995 (3) SCC 33.
227
AIR 1995 SC 2372.
228
AIR 1972 Ker.181.
229
AIR 1993 Ker.62.
In D.D.A. v. Skipper Construction
230
, it was held that court should not grant stay
or injunction in a mechanical manner. It is no answer that let injunction be granted and
the other side may ask for its vacation.
In Abdul Ahad v. Gulam Md. Dar
231
and Manohar v. Raj Bahadur
232
, it was held
that Court has inherent power to issue temporary injunction. But it should not be
granted unless absolutely necessary for ends of justice.
In B.F.Varghese v. Joseph Thomas
233
, it was held that interlocutory mandatory
injunction can be granted at the instance of the defendant.
In Regina v. St. A.M.E. School
234
, the management of a school disobeyed the
direction of the Divisional Inspector of Schools to restore the teacher to her original
position of Head Mistress. It was held that the court will not grant mandatory
injunction to enforce the order.
In Nandan pictures v. Art Pictures
235
and Rajlakshmi v. Kunji Pillai
236
, it was
held that mandatory injunction may be granted in very exceptional cases.
In Mahadeo v. Pune Municipal Corporation
237
, it was held that injunction
cannot be granted against a rightful owner in favour of a person in unlawful possession.
In S.T.C. v. Jainsons Clothing
238
, it was held that Court will not grant injunction
unless specific plea of fraud or irretrievable injustice is made out.
In Cotton Corpn. of India v. United Industrial Bank
239
, it was held that injunction
restraining a person from initiating a proceeding in a Court of co-ordinate or superior
jurisdiction cannot be granted.
In Karthiyayani v. Govindan
240
, it was held that a person in possession of
immovable property can sustain a suit for injunction against the rightful owner
preventing him from disturbing his possession.
230
1996 (4) SCC 622.
231
AIR 1967 J& K 75.
232
AIR 1962 SC 527.
233
1956 KLT 615.
234
AIR 1971 SC 1920.
235
AIR 1956 Cal.428.
236
AIR 1959 Ker.277.
237
1995 (3) SCC 33.
238
AIR 1994 SC 2778.
239
AIR 1983 SC 1272.
240
AIR 1980 Ker.224.
In Syed Mohammed v. Kassim Beevi
241
, the suit was for recovery of person of
wife. It was held that court can issue an order of temporary injunction restraining her
from contracting a second marriage.
In Agricultural Produce market Committee v. G.R. Chhaniyara
242
, it was held
that temporary injunction can be granted only if person, seeking injunction, has
concluded right enforceable by way of injunction.
In Ashtamoorthi Namboodiri v. Ramayyan
243
, it was held that trustees of a
temple terminating the services of Manager who was continuing to function in defiance
of the trustee- Injunction restraining him from performing acts of management can be
granted.
In Kitex Ltd. v. D. Surekha
244
, court having no jurisdiction to try a suit granted
injunction. It was held that it can vacate the same in exercise of power under S.151.
In State of Bihar v. Sonabati Kumari
245
, it was held that an injunction order is
binding not only upon the party but also upon his agents, servants and workmen.
Consequence of Disobedience or Breach of Injunction
R.2A (1) provides that in the case of disobedience of any injunction granted or
other order made under Rule 1 or Rule 2 or breach of any of the terms on which the
injunction was granted or the order made, the Court granting the injunction or making
the order, or any court to which the suit or proceeding is transferred, may order the
property of the person guilty of such disobedience or breach to be attached, and may
also order such person to be detained in the civil prison for a term not exceeding six
months, unless in the meantime the Court directs his release.
R.2A (2) no attachment made under this rule shall remain in force for more than
one year, at the end of which time, if the disobedience or breach continues, the property
attached may be sold and out of the proceeds, the Court may award such compensation
as it thinks fit to the injured party and shall pay the balance, if any, to the party entitled
thereto.
241
1953 KLT 791.
242
1997 (5) SCC 468.
243
1959 KLJ 1169.
244
AIR 1992 Ker.333.
245
AIR 1961 SC 221, 229-230.
In Sreedharan v. Vargheese
246
, it was held that attachment of properties is not a
condition precedent for detention of the party in prison.
In Sanku v. Antony
247
, it was held that a party aggrieved by dismissal of an
application under O.39 R.2A filed for taking action for disobedience cannot challenge
the same in appeal filed under O.41 R.1 against the original decree without recourse
to a separate appeal under O.43 R.1(r).
In Nanu Ramachandran v. Raman Uthaman
248
, it was held that court can allow
the party to put the property back in the same position the date on which the order of
injunction was passed.
In T. M.Bagasarwalla v. H.R. Industries
249
, it was held that a person who
disobeys an interim injunction made by Civil Court can be punished under O.39 R.2A
even it is found ultimately that the Civil Court has no jurisdiction to entertain and try
the suit.
In Sameer Khan v. Bindu Khan
250
, it was held that in case of disobedience of
injunction, court may order both attachment of property and detention in civil prison
or either of them alone on consideration of fact situation.
In Ayyappan v. Father Thomas
251
, it was held that calculated and intentional
violation of injunction issued by court is matter affecting the dignity and authority of
Court which issued it and will have to be dealt with seriously. The time limit of
detention for three months relates only to execution of an injunction decree where
detention by court can be made indefinitely subject to its discretion till the decree is
obeyed.
In Dinesh v. Pioneer Shopping Complex (P) Ltd
252
, it was held that High Court
has necessary jurisdiction to entertain applications under O.39 R.2A. High Court is a
Court of Record and has power to punish a person not only for violation of order of
this Court, but also, of an order of any Court subordinate to it.
246
1991 (2) KLT 761.
247
1990 (2) KLT 578.
248
1994 (2) KLT SN 44.
249
1997 (2) KLT SN 14.
250
1998 (7) SCC 59.
251
1989 (2) KLT SN 32.
252
2002 (1) KLT 35.
In Kochu Pennu Ambujakshi v. V.V. Channar
253
, it was held that police
assistance shall be given to enforce only the final order of injunction and not ex patre
order.
In D.D.A. v. Skipper Construction
254
, it was held that court should undo the
wrong if any act is done in violation of order of injunction or stay. Court may grant the
relief in addition to punishment for contempt.
Before Granting Injunction, Court to Direct Notice to Opposite Party
Rule 3 provides that the court shall in all cases, except where it appears that the
object of granting injunction would be defeated by the delay, before granting an
injunction direct notice of the application for the same to be given to the opposite party.
By the proviso to R.3 where it is proposed to grant an injunction without giving
notice to the opposite party, the court shall record the reasons for its opinion that the
object of granting the injunction would be defeated by the delay, and require the
applicant,
(a) to deliver to the opposite party, or to send to him by registered post,
immediately after the order granting the injunction has been made, a copy of the
application for injunction together with-
(i) a copy of the affidavit filed in support of the application;
(ii) a copy of the plaint;
(iii) copies of documents on which the applicant relies, and
(b) to file, on the day on which such injunction is granted or on the day immediately
following that day, an affidavit stating that the copies aforesaid have been so delivered
or sent.
Court to Dispose of Application for Injunction within Thirty Days
R.3A provides that where an injunction has been granted without giving notice
to the opposite party, the Court shall endeavour to finally dispose of the application
within thirty days from the date on which the injunction was granted; and where it is
unable so to do it shall record its reasons for such inability.
253
AIR 1993 Ker.62.
254
1996 (4) SCC 622.
Order for Injunction may be Discharged, Varied or Set Aside
Rule 4 provides that order for injunction may be discharged, varied or set aside
by the court, on application made thereto by any party dissatisfied with the order.
If in an application for temporary injunction or in any affidavit supporting such
application, a party has knowingly made a false or misleading statement in relation to
a material particular and the injunction was granted without giving notice to the
opposite party, the court shall vacate the injunction unless, it considers that it is not
necessary in the interests of justice.
255
An order of injunction passed without giving notice to the opposite party shall
not be discharged, varied or set aside on application by that party, except where there
is a change in the circumstances or unless the court is satisfied that the order has
caused undue hardship to that party.
256
According to Section 95, if it appears to the court that an injunction was
applied for on insufficient grounds, the court may, on the application of the
defendant, award against the plaintiff an amount not exceeding one thousand rupees
as compensation to the defendant for the expense or injury caused to him. An order
determining any such application shall bar any suit for compensation in respect of
such injunction.
TOPIC 29
APPOINTMENT OF RECEIVERS (Section 94 & Order XL)
The appointment of receivers is a significant legal mechanism used to
safeguard and manage property or assets involved in a civil suit. This process is
governed by Section 94 and Order XL of the Code of Civil Procedure, 1908 (CPC).
Receiver is an officer or representative of the court. S.94
257
and O.XL of CPC deals
with appointment of receiver and his powers and duties.
255
Proviso I to R.4.
256
Proviso II to R.4.
257
See S.94 in the previous Topic.
Section 94 of the CPC grants the court the authority to appoint a receiver in certain
circumstances during the pendency of a civil suit. A receiver is an individual or entity
appointed by the court to take possession and control of property or assets that are the
subject of the lawsuit. Section 94 provides the court with the discretion to appoint a
receiver when it deems necessary for the protection, preservation, or management of
property or assets involved in the suit.
Order XL of the CPC provides detailed procedural rules for the appointment of
receivers. It outlines the steps and conditions under which a receiver may be appointed.
A party to the suit or any other interested person may apply to the court for the
appointment of a receiver by filing a formal application. The court may appoint a
receiver when it is satisfied that the appointment is necessary to preserve or protect the
property or assets in dispute, prevent waste, or ensure proper management during the
course of the suit. The court typically issues notices to all parties involved in the suit
to hear their objections to the appointment of a receiver. The order appointing the
receiver specifies their duties, powers, and responsibilities. Receivers are accountable
to the court and must manage the property or assets impartially and in accordance with
the court's directions. The court may require the receiver to furnish security (such as a
bond) to ensure the faithful performance of their duties. The court may terminate the
receiver's appointment when it deems fit, such as when the suit is concluded or
circumstances no longer necessitate the receiver's involvement.
The appointment of receivers is a protective measure aimed at ensuring the
preservation and proper management of property or assets involved in a lawsuit.
Receivers are officers of the court and must act in accordance with the court's
directions and orders. The appointment of a receiver can be a temporary or permanent
measure, depending on the needs of the case.
Appointment of Receivers
CPC confers very wide discretion on the courts to appoint and remove
receivers.
Rule 1 (1) provides that where it appears to the court to be just and convenient,
the court may by order
a) appoint a receiver of any property, whether before or after decree;
b) remove any person from the possession or custody of any property;
c) commit the same to the possession, custody or management, of the receiver; and
d) confer upon the receiver all such powers as to bringing and defending suits and for the
realization, management, protection, preservation and improvement of the property,
the collection of the rents and profits thereof, the application and disposal of such rents
and profits, and the execution of documents as the owner himself has, or such of those
powers as the court thinks fit.
Rule 1 (2) provides that nothing in this rule shall authorize the court to remove
from the possession or custody of property, any person whom any party to the suit has
not a present right to so remove.
In Muhammed v. Abdullakutty
258
, it was held that S.94 empowers a Court to
appoint a receiver of any property if it is so prescribed and O.40 R.1 prescribes the
condition for the exercise of that power. It does not limit the exercise of that power to
cases where either the suit or the execution proceeding is pending.
In Chacko v. Vargheese
259
, it was held that the receiver holds the property for
the ultimate benefit of the successful party to the suit.
In Kanhaiyalal v. Dr.D.R Banaji
260
, it was held that sale of property by receiver
without leave of Court is voidable
In Kuruvila v. Avira
261
, it was held that an appeal is not maintainable upon an
order refusing to remove receiver.
In Harilal v. Loonkaran
262
, it was held that a receiver is an officer or
representative of the Court and he functions under its direction.
In Kanhaiyalal v. Dr. D.R Banaji
263
, it was held that leave of appointing Court
is necessary to proceed against a receiver.
258
1969 KLJ 838.
259
1954 KLT SN P. 30.
260
AIR 1985 SC 725,728.
261
1954 KLT 981.
262
AIR 1962 SC 21, 27.
263
AIR 1958 SC 725.
In Chandra Neogi v. Ranjan Sarkar
264
, it was held that a power to appoint a
receiver includes the power to remove a receiver also. Since order of appointment is
appealable order removing a receiver would also be appealable.
In Veerapan Chetiar v. Cholachi
265
, it was held that receiver can be appointed
in respect of properties located beyond the jurisdiction of the Court.
In K.P.M. Saheed v. Aluminium Fabricating Company
266
, property in the hands
of receiver was sold without leave of Court which appointed the receiver. It was held
that the sale is illegal and is liable to be set aside in appropriate proceedings.
In Venkata Mallayya v. Ramaswami & Co.
267
, it was held that a receiver can
institute a suit in his own name in the capacity of a receiver for recovery of debt.
In Kassim Abdul Sathar Sait v. Hajee Rahman
268
, it was held that in an
application for the appointment of receiver if no case is made out the application is to
be rejected by the Court.
.
Rule 2 provides that the court may by general or special order fix the amount
to be paid as remuneration for the services of the receiver.
Duties
Rule 3 provides that every receiver so appointed shall
(a) furnish such security if any, as the court thinks fit, duly to account for what he
shall receive in respect of the property;
(b) submit his accounts for such periods and in such form as the court directs;
(c) pay the amount due from him as the court directs; and
(d) be responsible for any loss occasioned to the property by his willful default or
gross negligence.
264
1968 KLT SN 25.
265
AIR 1967 Ker.118.
266
1985 KLT 991.
267
AIR 1964 SC 818, 823.
268
AIR 1950 TC 100.
In Subramania Iyer v. Rajanunni Nair
269
, it was held that when the execution
is desired in respect of property in the hands of the receiver or other officer of the Court
the procedure laid down in O.21 R.52 could be followed. Leave of the Court which
appointed the receiver is not necessary.
In Essack Sait v. Panchali Amma
270
, it was held that receiver is an officer of
the Court and has no interest either in the suit or in the subject-matter.
Enforcement of Receiver’s Duties
R.4 (1) provides that if a receiver fails to submit his accounts at such periods
and in such form as the Court directs, the Court may order his property to be attached
until he duly submits his accounts in the form ordered.
R.4 (2) provides that the Court may at the instance of any party to any suit or
proceeding in which a receiver has been appointed or of its own motion, at any time
make an enquiry as to what amount, if any, is due from the receiver as shown by his
accounts or otherwise, or whether any loss to the property has been occasioned by his
willful default or gross negligence, and may order the amount found due or the amount
of the loss so occasioned to be paid by the receiver into Court or otherwise within a
period to be fixed by the Court. All parties to the suit or proceeding and the receiver
shall be made parties to any such enquiry. Notice of the enquiry shall be given by
registered post to the surety, if any, for the receiver, but the cost of his appearance shall
be borne by the surety himself unless the Court otherwise directs.
Proviso to R.4 (2) states that the Court may, where the account is disputed by
the parties and is of a complicated nature or where it is alleged that loss has been
occasioned to the property by the willful default or gross negligence of the receiver,
refer the parties to a suit. In all such cases the Court shall state in writing its reasons
for the reference.
R.4 (3) provides that if the receiver fails to pay, any amount which he has been
ordered to pay under sub-rule (2) of this rule, within the period fixed in the order, the
Court may direct such amount to be recovered either from the security (if any)
269
1987 (2) KLT 998.
270
1961 (2) KLR 66.
furnished by him under Rule3, or by attachment and sale of his property, or if his
property has been attached under sub-rule (1) of this rule, by sale of the property so
attached, and may apply the proceeds of the sale to make good any amount due from
him or any loss occasioned by him and shall pay the balance (if any) of the sale
proceeds to the receiver.
In Lohithan v. Madhavan
271
, it was held that Leave of the Court is not necessary
to sustain a suit against a Receiver after his discharge.
In Velayudhan v. Ouseph
272
, there was an order allowing defendant to recover
from receiver amount he was liable to account. It was held that an appeal would lie.
In Vasudevan Namboothiri v. Gopala Pillai
273
, it was held that the order for
payment of money by the receiver can be enforced only in the manner prescribed by
O.40 R.4 (3). Therefore the receiver cannot be arrested and detained in prison under
provisions of S.51 CPC.
In Achuthan v. Karthiyayani Amma
274
, there was a transfer of case to Sub-Court
on ground of territorial jurisdiction. Receivership was terminated. The court observed
that order of Sub-Court directing Receiver and surety to deposit income of property is
legal.
Section 94 and Order XL of the CPC are significant because they provide a
legal mechanism for the court to appoint receivers to protect, preserve, and manage
property or assets involved in civil suits. This mechanism helps prevent waste,
mismanagement, or harm to the assets during the litigation process, ensuring fairness
and justice. Section 94 and Order XL of the CPC grant the court the authority to
appoint receivers to manage and protect property or assets involved in a civil suit, with
the aim of preserving the rights and interests of the parties and ensuring the proper
administration of justice.
271
1961 KLT 883.
272
1955 KLT SN P. 6.
273
1962 KLT 25.
274
1961 KLT 795.
TOPIC 30
WITHDRAWAL OF SUITS (Order XXIII Rule 1, Rule 2)
Order XXIII, Rules 1 and 2 of the Code of Civil Procedure, 1908 (CPC), govern the
withdrawal of suits. These rules outline the procedures for a plaintiff to withdraw a
suit either with or without the permission of the court.
Rule 1 - Withdrawal of Suit or Abandonment of Part of Claim:
Rule 1 of Order XXIII CPC allows the plaintiff (the person who initiates the lawsuit)
to withdraw a suit or abandon part of their claim with the permission of the court. This
rule states that: The plaintiff may, with the court's permission, withdraw the suit or
abandon part of the claim at any stage of the proceedings. Such permission may be
granted unconditionally or subject to terms and conditions deemed appropriate by the
court.
Rule 2 - Consequence of Withdrawal:
Rule 2 of Order XXIII CPC deals with the consequences of the withdrawal of a suit.
According to this rule: Where a suit is withdrawn or any part of a claim is abandoned
under Rule 1, the plaintiff shall be liable to pay the costs incurred by the defendant up
to that point. If the plaintiff wishes to institute a fresh suit on the same cause of action,
they must obtain the court's permission to do so.
Rule 1 allows the plaintiff to withdraw a suit or abandon part of the claim, but only
with the court's permission. This ensures that such withdrawals are made after due
consideration and in accordance with the court's discretion. Rule 2 specifies that when
a suit is withdrawn or a claim is abandoned, the plaintiff is liable to pay the costs
incurred by the defendant up to that point. This is to compensate the defendant for the
legal expenses they have already borne. If the plaintiff wishes to file a fresh suit on the
same cause of action after withdrawing a suit, they must seek the court's permission to
do so. This prevents abuse of the legal process through repeated filing of suits.
The plaintiff has an absolute right to withdraw his suit before the passing of a
decree. The plaintiff can apply for withdrawal of the suit at the appellate stage also;
but the grant of permission will be refused if it results in deprival of any rights of the
defendant.
There are two types of withdrawal:
1. Absolute Withdrawal: i.e. withdrawal without the leave of the court; and
2. Qualified Withdrawal: i.e. withdrawal with the leave of the court.
Order XXIII Rule 1(1) provides that at any time after the institution of the suit,
the plaintiff may abandon his suit or a portion of his claim without the leave of the
court. This right is absolute and unqualified and the court cannot refuse to withdraw
a suit and compel the plaintiff to proceed with it. However, in case of such
abandonment or withdrawal of a suit without the leave of the court, the plaintiff will
be precluded from instituting a fresh suit in respect of the same cause of action.
275
The
plaintiff also becomes liable for such cost as the court may award to the defendant.
Where the court is satisfied that a suit must fail by reason of some formal defect
or there are sufficient grounds for allowing the plaintiff to institute a fresh suit for the
subject matter of a suit or part of a claim, it may grant permission to withdraw such
suit or part of such suit with liberty to file a fresh suit.
276
The term ‘formal defect’ connotes some defect of form or procedure not
affecting the merits of the case such as want of statutory notice u/s 80, misjoinder of
parties, failure to disclose cause of action, mistake in not seeking proper relief,
erroneous valuation of the subject matter of suit etc.
It is the discretion of the court to grant such permission and it can be granted
by the court either on application to the court or on suo moto. Such permission may
be granted on such terms as to the costs etc. as the court thinks fit. The granting of
permission to withdraw a suit with liberty to file a fresh suit removes the bar of res
judicata. It restores the plaintiff to the position which he would have occupied had he
brought not suit at all.
275
Rule 1 (4).
276
Rule 1 (3).
The proviso to Rule 1, Order XXIII states that where the plaintiff is a minor,
neither the suit nor any part of the claim can be abandoned without the leave of the
court. An application for leave must be accompanied by an affidavit of the next friend
and also if the minor is represented by a pleader by a certificate of the pleader to the
effect that the proposed abandonment is in his opinion, for the minor’s benefit.
277
Under Rule 1(5), where there are two or more plaintiffs in a suit, the suit or
part of the claim cannot be abandoned or withdrawn without the consent of all the other
plaintiffs. However one of such plaintiffs may abandon or withdraw from the suit to
the extent of his own interest in it.
In Suraj Pal Singh v. Ghuram Singh, it was held that the provision of this order
apply to withdrawal of appeals and revisions. Similarly, in appropriate cases, an
appellate court can grant permission to withdraw a suit with liberty to file a fresh
suit.
278
In Ramaswamy Raja v. Venkata Raju
279
, the S.C. directed that such power
however has to be exercised cautiously.
In Sargujja Transport Service v. S.T.A.T
280
, the general principles of
withdrawal of suit also apply to petitions under Article 32 or Article 226 of
Constitution. But the petitioner cannot thereafter institute a fresh petition on the same
cause of action.
When Transposition of Defendants as Plaintiffs may be Permitted
R.1A provides that where a suit is withdrawn or abandoned by a plaintiff under
R.1, and a defendant applies to be transposed as a plaintiff under R.10 of O.1, the court
shall, in considering such application, have due regard to the question whether the
applicant has a substantial question to be decided as against any of the other
defendants.
277
Rule 1 (2).
278
AIR 1973, All. 466.
279
AIR 1966, Mad. 346.
280
1987 (1) SCC 5.
In George Paul v. Thankamma Paulose
281
, it was held that substantial question
can be substantial question of fact also.
In Ramakrishnan v. Thanka
282
, it was held that plaintiff not pressing the suit is
actually abandonment of the suit. O.23 R.1A applies.
In Abraham v. Joseph
283
, it was held that the provision applies to proceedings
in appeal also and is not restricted to proceedings in a suit.
In Abraham v. Joseph
284
, it was also held that when an appeal is dismissed as
withdrawn it does not inhibit the right of the petitioner to apply for transposing himself
to be an appellant. In this case the court also found that once an application for
transposition is allowed it will not be necessary to set aside the order declaring the
defendant ex parte.
In Ramakrishnan v. Thanka
285
, it was held that even if the suit for partition is
not pressed by the plaintiff, the defendants being sharers have a right to proceed with
the suit. Defendants can work out their rights under O.23 R.1A.
Rule 2 of Order XXIII provides that a plaintiff withdrawing a suit with liberty
to file a fresh suit is bound by the law of limitation in the same manner as if the first
suit has not been filed at all.
In Padminikutty Amma v. Subbain Chettiar
286
, it was held that when the plaint
is returned for presentation to the proper Court and when presented in latter Court it is
a fresh suit and not a continuation of the earlier suit. S.14 of limitation Act will be
inapplicable to a case where the plaintiff withdraws the prior suit under O.23 R.1 of
CPC by reason of provision under R.2.
Order XXIII Rules 1 and 2 of the CPC are significant because they provide a
mechanism for the plaintiff to withdraw a suit or abandon part of a claim, subject to
281
2003 (1) KLT SN 76.
282
2000 (3) KLT 886.
283
2002 (1) KLT 936.
284
2002 (1) KLT 936.
285
2000 (3) KLT 886.
286
ILR 1977 (1) Ker.490.
the court's permission. This mechanism allows plaintiffs to exercise their discretion in
managing their legal cases while ensuring that defendants are not unduly burdened by
costs. Order XXIII Rules 1 and 2 of the CPC govern the withdrawal of suits by
plaintiffs. Rule 1 allows withdrawal with the court's permission, and Rule 2 specifies
the consequences of withdrawal, including the payment of costs to the defendant and
the need for court permission to file a fresh suit on the same cause of action.
TOPIC 31
COMPROMISE OF SUITS (Order XXIII Rule 3, 3A & 3B)
Order XXIII, Rules 3, 3A, and 3B of the Code of Civil Procedure, 1908 (CPC), pertain
to the compromise of suits and the procedure for recording and enforcing such
compromises. These rules are crucial for facilitating the amicable resolution of
disputes between parties involved in a civil suit.
Rule 3 - Compromise of Suits:
Rule 3 of Order XXIII CPC deals with the compromise of suits. It allows parties to a
civil suit to arrive at a compromise and settle their disputes out of court. The
compromise can be with respect to the whole or any part of the subject matter of the
suit. According to Rule 3, when parties reach a compromise, they can apply to the
court for recording the compromise. The court, upon being satisfied that the
compromise is lawful and for the benefit of the parties, records it.
Rule 3A - Compromise of Disputes Outside Court:
Rule 3A, which was introduced as an amendment, deals with compromises of disputes
outside the court, particularly in mediation or settlement processes. It allows parties to
submit their compromise to the court for recording, even if the compromise was
reached outside of the court proceedings. Rule 3A emphasizes the court's role in
facilitating the resolution of disputes and encourages parties to seek amicable
settlements through alternative dispute resolution mechanisms.
Rule 3B - Effect of Compromise:
Rule 3B outlines the effect of a compromise recorded by the court. According to this
rule, a compromise recorded by the court shall be deemed to be a decree of the court.
Parties can apply to the court for the recording of a compromise. This formal recording
provides legal validity to the compromise and ensures that it can be enforced like a
court decree. The court will only record a compromise if it is satisfied that the
compromise is lawful (i.e., it doesn't violate any laws or public policy) and that it
benefits the parties involved. Rule 3A encourages parties to explore alternative dispute
resolution methods, such as mediation, and allows for the subsequent recording of such
compromises by the court. A compromise recorded by the court under Rule 3B is
treated as a decree of the court. This means that it can be enforced as if it were a court
judgment.
After the institution of the suit, it is open to the party to compromise, adjust or
settle it by an agreement or compromise. However the court must be satisfied that the
agreement is lawful and it can pass a decree in accordance with it. The court should
also consider whether such a suit can be enforced against all the parties to the
compromise. If the compromise is not lawful, an order recording compromise can be
recalled by the court.
287
No next friend or guardian of a minor shall, without the leave of the court, enter
into any agreement or compromise on behalf of the minor with reference to the suit,
unless such leave is expressly recorded in the proceedings.
Settlement by Oath
Rule 3A provides that if the parties agree to have the suit or any part of it decided
by an oath taken by one of them in Court or elsewhere and tender a written agreement
signed by both of them setting forth the terms of the oath and the place where it is
taken, the Court may accept such agreement. After the oath has been taken in the
manner proposed, the Court shall decide the case in terms of the agreement. After the
287
Benwarilal v. Chando Devi , 1993 (1) SCC 581.
agreement has been accepted by the Court, it shall not be competent to any of the
parties to withdraw therefrom without the leave of the Court. If any party withdraws
or refuses to take the oath without lawful excuse, the Court may decide the case against
him or pass such other order as it deems proper.
In Kunhavulla v. Janu Amma and Another
288
, it was held that unless and until
the Courts grant permission to withdraw from the agreement the parties are not having
the option to withdraw once the agreement is accepted by the Court. Once agreement
is made and accepted the parties could resile from the agreement only under any of the
vitiating circumstances provided in S.14 or mistake of fact subject to the provisions of
S.20, S.21 and S.22 of the Contract Act.
In Meenakshi v. manikkam
289
, it was held that O.43 R.1A and O.23 R.3A makes
the position abundantly clear that challenge against a compromise decree cannot be by
a separate suit.
In Govindan v. Chacko
290
, it was held that the fact that a party is not prepared to
take an oath is not by itself a ground for disbelieving his evidence.
In Mohammed v. Koya
291
, it was held that after the Amendment Act R.3A stands
repealed, there cannot be settlement of disputes by oath.
In Benwarilal v Chando Devi
292
, compromise petition was signed by the
counsel of the plaintiff. It was not signed by the defendant or his counsel. It was held
that Court cannot accept it. Petition of compromise must be signed by the parties.
No Agreement or Compromise to be entered in a Representative Suit without Leave of
Court
288
1986 KLT SN 87.
289
1994 (1) KLT 156.
290
1959 KLT 1348.
291
1995 (1) KLT 579.
292
1993 (1) SCC 581.
Rule 3B (1) provides that no agreement or compromise in a representative suit
shall be entered into without the leave of the Court expressly recorded in the
proceedings; and any such agreement or compromise entered into without the leave of
the Court so recorded shall void.
Rule 3B (2) provides that before granting such leave, the Court shall give notice
in such manner as it may think fit to such persons as may appear to it to be interested
in the suit.
Explanation
In this rule, “representative suit” means.-
(a) a suit under Section 91 or Section 92,
(b) a suit under Rule 8 of Order I,
(c) a suit in which the manager of an Undivided Hindu Family sues or is sued as
representing the other members of the family,
(d) any other suit in which the decree passed may, by virtue of the provisions of this Code
or of any other law for the time being in force, bind any person who is not named as
party to the suit.
In Union Carbide v. Union of India
293
, it was held that O.23 R.3B does not apply
proprio vigore to proceeding under Art.136 of the Constitution.
In Mohammed v. Avarankutty Haji
294
, it was held that Proviso of O.1 R.8 (4) are
applicable also to interim orders passed in the suit and is not restricted to final orders.
A compromise decree is not a decision of the court. It is acceptance by the
court of some thing to which the parties have agreed. The court does not decide
anything. Hence in Subba Rao v. Jagganath Rao
295
, it was held that a compromise
decree cannot operate as Res-judicata. Such a decree however may create an estoppel
between the parties.
293
AIR 1992 SC 248.
294
1996 (1) KLT 474.
295
AIR 1967, SC 591.
A consent decree is executable in the same manner as an ordinary decree. But
if the decree gives effect to an unlawful, compromise or if such decree is passed by a
court having no jurisdiction, it is a nullity and its validity can be set aside even in the
execution.
No suit can be filed to set aside a compromise decree on the ground that it is
not lawful.
296
In Banwarilal v. Chandodevi
297
, no appeal lies against a decree passed by the
court with the consent of the party. A party challenging the compromise can file an
appeal. Likewise such a decree can be challenged by a suit on the ground of fraud,
undue influence or coercion.
Proceedings in Execution of Decrees not Affected
Rule 4 provides that nothing in this Order shall apply to any proceedings in
execution of a decree or order.
In Thressiamma v. State Bank of Travancore
298
, it was held that decree-holder
purchasing property in execution and later entering into an agreement with judgment-
debtor to reconvey the property on deposit of decretal amount. Court can enforce the
agreement if it is a valid one.
Order XXIII Rules 3, 3A, and 3B of the CPC are significant because they promote the
amicable resolution of disputes by allowing parties to settle their differences through
compromise. This approach not only reduces the burden on the court but also
empowers parties to actively participate in resolving their disputes in a mutually
acceptable manner. Order XXIII Rules 3, 3A, and 3B of the CPC facilitate the
compromise of suits, whether reached within or outside the court, by providing a
296
Rule 3A.
297
1993 (1) SCC 581.
298
1998 (2) KLT 964.
structured procedure for recording and enforcing such compromises. This mechanism
promotes dispute resolution and contributes to the efficient functioning of the legal
system.
TOPIC 32
EFFECT OF DEATH / ABATEMENT (Order XXII Rules 1 to 6)
Order XXII, Rules 1 to 6 of the Code of Civil Procedure, 1908 (CPC), deal with the
effect of the death of a party to a lawsuit and the subsequent abatement or continuation
of the suit. These rules are crucial for ensuring the proper administration of justice
when a party to a lawsuit passes away during the legal proceedings.
Rule 1 - Death of Plaintiff or Sole Plaintiff:
Rule 1 of Order XXII CPC addresses situations where the plaintiff (the person who
initiates the lawsuit) dies before the conclusion of the suit or when there is only one
plaintiff, and that plaintiff dies. In such cases, the suit abates unless the legal
representative of the deceased plaintiff is brought on record within the prescribed time.
Rule 2 - Abatement of Suit:
Rule 2 explains the concept of abatement. Abatement essentially means that the lawsuit
comes to an end due to the death of a party. It clarifies that the death of a plaintiff or
sole plaintiff causes the abatement of the entire suit, while the death of one of multiple
plaintiffs does not necessarily lead to the abatement of the entire suit.
Rule 3 - Application for Bringing Legal Representatives on Record:
Rule 3 provides the procedure for applying to the court to bring the legal representatives
of the deceased party on record. The application should be made by the party desiring
to continue the suit and must be filed within the time specified by the court.
Rule 4 - Notice to Legal Representatives:
Rule 4 mandates that notice must be issued to the legal representatives of the deceased
party once an application is filed to bring them on record. This notice informs the legal
representatives about the pending suit and their opportunity to be substituted in place
of the deceased party.
Rule 5 - Time for Application:
Rule 5 specifies the time within which an application to bring the legal representatives on
record should be made. The court may extend this time if it deems fit.
Rule 6 - Procedure on Abatement:
Rule 6 outlines the procedure to be followed when a suit abates. It states that upon
abatement, the court shall make an order officially recording the abatement, and the
suit shall stand dismissed as against the deceased party.
The purpose of these rules is to ensure that legal proceedings continue as smoothly as
possible when a party to a lawsuit dies, while also protecting the interests of the
deceased party's legal representatives. If the legal representatives of the deceased party
are brought on record within the specified time, the suit can continue, and the legal
representatives effectively step into the shoes of the deceased party. The rules aim to
strike a balance between the need for justice to be served and the practicality of dealing
with situations involving the death of a party.
Death of the Plaintiff
Where the sole plaintiff dies the suit will not abate, if the right to sue survives.
It can be continued by the heirs and legal representatives of the deceased plaintiff. If
the right to sue does not survive, then suit will come to an end.
299
In Pallikandi Rohini v.Padmini
300
, on the death of sole appellant, some of the
respondents as legal representatives applied for transposing them as additional
appellants after the expiry of time for impleading. It was held that it can be allowed in
appropriate cases.
299
Order XXII, Rule 1.
300
ILR 1978 (2) Ker.311.
In M.P. Sankunni v. T.G. Nair
301
, it was held that cause of action for defamation
does not survive the death of the person defamed.
In Phool Rani v. Naubat Rai
302
, it was held that suit for eviction of tenant on
ground of reasonable requirement. Cause of action does not survive on the death of the
landlord.
In K.D. Mg. Committee v. Thachudaya
303
, A sued B contending that property
was given to A in personam for his personal benefit. A died during pendency of his
appeal. It was held that the right being a right in personam ceased to exist on A’s death.
In Gram Panchayat v. Amar Singh
304
, it was held that suit filed in representative
capacity does not abate upon death of one of the plaintiffs.
Where one of the several plaintiffs dies, and the right to sue survives, to the
surviving plaintiff(s), the court will make an entry to that effect and proceed with the
suit by the surviving plaintiff(s).
305
Where one of the several plaintiffs dies and the right to sue does not survive to
the surviving plaintiff(s) or where the sole plaintiff dies and the right to sue survives,
the court on an application by the legal representative of the deceased plaintiff(s) will
make him a party and shall proceed with the suit.
306
Where no such application is made within the period of limitation (90 days)
the suit shall abate, so far as the deceased plaintiff is concerned. On an application by
the defendant, the court may award cost, which might have been incurred by him in
defending the suit, from the estate of the deceased plaintiff.
307
Where the plaintiff dies, after hearing and before pronouncement of judgment,
the suit shall not abate.
308
301
AIR 1986 SC 411.
302
AIR 1973 SC 2110.
303
1996 (2) SCC 680.
304
2000 (10) SCC 644.
305
Order XXII, Rule 2.
306
Order XXII, Rule 3 (1).
307
Order XXII, Rule 3 (2).
308
Order XXII, Rule 6.
If a suit is filed against a dead person by the plaintiff without knowledge of
such death, on the application by the plaintiff, the court may permit the legal
representatives of the defendant to be brought on record. On such impleadment, the
suit shall be deemed to have been instituted on the day the plaint was presented. The
court’s satisfaction breathes life into the suit.
309
Death of the Defendant
Where the sole defendant dies, the suit shall not abate, if the right to sue
survives. It can be continued against the heirs and legal representatives of the deceased
defendant.
310
Where one of the several defendants dies and the right to sue does not survive
against the surviving defendant or defendants or where the sole surviving defendant
dies, and the right to sue survives, the court on application by the legal representative
of the deceased defendant, will make him a party and proceed with the suit.
311
Where no such application is made within the period of limitation (90 days)
the suit shall abate as against the deceased defendant.
312
If no such application is made
within the prescribed period, the suit shall abate against the deceased defendant.
313
The court may if it thinks fit exempt the plaintiff from substituting the
representative of a non-contesting or pro-forma defendant and pronounce judgment
not withstanding the death of such defendant.
314
Where the plaintiff is ignorant of the death of the defendant and for that reason
is unable to make an application for substitution of legal representative of the deceased
defendant within the period of limitation, and the suit stands abated, he may make an
application for setting aside such abatement, within the period of limitation, stating
309
Karuppaswamy v. Ramamuthy, AIR 1993 SC 2324, 2326.
310
Order XXII, Rule 1.
311
Order XXII, Rule 2.
312
Order XXII, Rule 4 (1).
313
R.4 (3).
314
Order XXII, Rule 4 (4).
that due to the ignorance of the death of the defendant, he could not make an
application within time.
315
An order rejecting the application for setting aside the abatement is appealable
u/s 104.
316
However second appeal against such an order is not maintainable.
317
When the defendant dies after hearing and before the pronouncement of
judgment the suit shall not abate.
318
The general rule is that all rights of action and all demands what so ever, existing
in favour of or against a person at the time of his death, survives to or against his
representatives. But in case of personal action, the right to sue will not survive to or
against his representatives. In these cases the maxim, ‘Actio Personalis Moritur Cum
Persona(a personal action dies with the person) applies.
319
In Meenaakshy Pillayathiri Amma v. Lekshmi
320
, it was held that ex parte decree
was passed without the knowledge of death of defendant. Application under S.151 and
O.22 R.4 and 9 was held to be proper and held provisions of O.9 R.9 and R.13 will not
apply as they apply only to persons who are alive on the date when effective orders
were passed.
A mere excuse about the plaintiff not knowing of the death of the opposite party
is not sufficient. He has to state reasons, which, according to him, led to his not
knowing of the death of the defendant within a reasonable time and satisfy the court
about it.
321
General Principles
If an application is not made within the time allowed by law to bring the legal
representatives of the deceased on record, the suit will abate so far as the deceased
315
Order XXII, Rule 4 (5).
316
Order XLIII, Rule 1 (k).
317
Madan Naik Hansubala Devi, AIR 1983 SC 676.
318
Order XXII, Rule 6.
319
Hira Lal v. Kali Nath, AIR 1962 SC 199, 201.
320
AIR 1967 Ker.135.
321
Union of India v. Ram Charan, AIR 1964 SC 215.
plaintiff or the deceased defendant is concerned.
322
Once a suit or appeal is abated, a
specific order setting aside such abatement is necessary.
In case where there are two or more heirs and legal representatives of the
deceased party and one or more have been brought on record within time, a suit or an
appeal will not abate on the ground that all the legal representatives have not been
brought on record in time. The doctrine of abatement applies to an appeal also.
323
A suit or appeal does not abate on account of the death of an unnecessary, non-
material or pro forma defendant or respondent. Neither a suit nor an appeal abates
where any party to a suit or an appeal dies between the conclusion of hearing and the
pronouncement of the judgment.
324
The court has no inherent power under Section151
of the Code to implead legal representatives of a deceased respondent if the suit had
abated on account of the appellant not taking appropriate steps within time to bring the
legal representatives of the deceased party on record.
325
Determination of Question as to Legal Representative
Rule 5 provides that where the question arises as to whether any person is or is
not the legal representative of a deceased plaintiff deceased or a deceased defendant,
it is the duty of the court to decide such question. The court where such question arises
before the appellate court, that court may direct the subordinate court to inquire into
and give its findings on the dispute as to who is the legal representative of a deceased
party.
Procedure Where There is No Legal Representative
Rule 4A
326
provides that lays down the procedure where there is no legal
representative of a party or a legal representative is not found. The object of this
322
Union of India v. Ram Charan, AIR 1964 SC 215.
323
R.P. Gupta v. Murali Prasad, AIR 1972 SC 1181.
324
Thirugnanam v. Jagan Mohan, (1995) 5 SCC 115.
325
Union of India v. Ram Charan, AIR 1964 SC 215.
326
Added by the Amendment Act of 1976.
provision is that the other side should not suffer because of the absence of the legal
representative.
Order XXII Rules 1 to 6 of the CPC are significant because they provide a structured
process for handling situations where a party to a lawsuit dies during the legal
proceedings. These rules ensure that the rights and interests of all parties are protected
and that the litigation process can proceed fairly and efficiently. Order XXII Rules 1
to 6 of the CPC address the effect of the death of a party to a lawsuit and the subsequent
abatement or continuation of the suit. They establish a procedure for bringing the legal
representatives of the deceased party on record to ensure that the lawsuit can proceed
in a just and orderly manner.
TOPIC 33
SUIT BY/AGAINST GOVERNMENT/PUBLIC OFFICES
(Sections 79 to 82)
Sections 79 to 82 of the Code of Civil Procedure, 1908 (CPC), pertain to suits by or
against the government and public offices. These sections outline the procedures and
rules governing legal actions involving government entities, ensuring that such cases
are conducted fairly and efficiently.
Section 79 - Suits by or Against Government:
Section 79 of the CPC stipulates that any legal action against the government must be
instituted in the name of the government. It emphasizes that the government should be
named as the party in the suit.
Section 80 - Notice for Suing Government:
Section 80 imposes a mandatory requirement of serving a notice to the government or
a public officer as a precondition to filing a suit against the government. This notice
must provide the details of the grievance, the relief sought, and a two-month period for
the government to consider and potentially resolve the matter before the suit is filed.
Section 81 - Appearance of Government Pleader:
Section 81 deals with the appearance of the government or a public officer in court. It
states that when the government is sued, it shall be represented by a government
pleader who can act on its behalf in court proceedings.
Section 82 - Execution Against Public Officer in Official Capacity:
Section 82 addresses the execution of decrees against public officers in their official
capacity. It specifies that if a decree is passed against a public officer in their official
capacity, it may be executed against the assets of the state or government for the time
being or against the public officer personally, depending on certain conditions.
Section 79 mandates that the government be named as the party in suits against it. This
ensures clarity regarding the identity of the defendant. Section 80 introduces a notice
period that serves as an opportunity for the government to address the grievance and
potentially avoid litigation. The two-month notice period is a prerequisite for filing a
suit against the government. Section 81 establishes the role of a government pleader
who represents the government's interests in court. This ensures that government cases
are handled by authorized representatives. Section 82 outlines the process for
executing decrees against public officers in their official capacity, taking into account
specific circumstances.
Sections 79 to 82 lay down procedure where suits are brought by or against the
Govt. or public offices. In ordinary suits, between individuals and individuals, notice
need not be given to the defendant by the plaintiff before filing a suit. Section 80 (1)
of the Code declares that no suit shall be instituted against the Govt. or against a public
officer in respect of any act purporting to be done by such public officer in his official
capacity, until the expiration of 2 months next after notice in writing has been delivered
to or left at the office of-
1. in the case of a suit against the Central Govt., except where it relates to a Railway,
the Secretary to that Govt;
327
2. in the case of a suit against the Central Govt. where it relates to a Railway, the
General Manager of that Railway;
328
3. in the case of a suit against the State of Jammu & Kashmir, the Chief Secretary to
that Govt. or any other officer authorized by that Govt. in this behalf;
329
4. in the case of a suit against any other State Govt., a Secretary to that Govt. or the
Collector of that District; and in the case of a public officer, delivered to him or left at
his office.
330
A notice u/s 80(1) must contain name, description and place of residence of the
person giving notice, a statement of the cause of action and the relief claimed by him.
The primary object underlying section 80 is to afford an opportunity to the Govt.
or the public officer to consider the legal position and to settle the claim put forward
by the prospective plaintiff if the same appears to be just and proper.
This section has been intended to enable the Govt. or a public officer to negotiate
just claims and to settle them without adopting an unreasonable attitude by inflicting
wasteful expenditure.
Section 80 (2) deals with the circumstance exempting two months notice. This
section enables the plaintiff to institute a suit against the Govt. or public officer for
obtaining urgent or immediate relief with the leave of the court even without serving
notice to the Govt. or public officer. The object underlying this provision is to prevent
failure or miscarriage of justice in urgent cases.
327
S. 80 (1) (a).
328
S. 80 (1) (b).
329
S 80 (1) (bb).
330
S. 80 (1) (c).
In Dhian Singh v. Union of India
331
& Amar Nath v. Union of India
332
, it was
held that notice should not be construed in a pedantic manner or in a manner
completely divorced from common sense.
In Ghanshyam Dass v. Dominion of India
333
, notice was sent by father who
died before suit. It was held that son can sue without fresh notice.
In Aboobacker v. Union of India
334
, it was held that notice was issued on behalf
of firm and the suit was filed by proprietor is not fatal.
In Sawai Singhai v. Union of India
335
, it was held that to maintain suit for
injunction, mandatory and prohibitory, notice is necessary.
In Amar Nath v. Unoin of India
336
, it was held that notice is necessary for all
forms of action and kinds of relief including injunction.
In State v. Suryanarayana
337
, it was held that failure to serve a notice
complying with the requirements of the statue will entail dismissal of the suit.
In T.V. Parangodan v. District Collector
338
, it was held that no formal
application for leave to sue without notice under S.80 (1) is necessary. Leave need not
be in a formal order. It may be implied. Consideration of leave should not remain
pending until disposal of suit.
In Raghunath v. Union of India
339
, it was held that object of notice under S.80
is to give to the concerned Government and public officers’ opportunity to reconsider
the legal position and to make amends or settle the claim, if so advised without
litigation.
In V. Padmanabhan v. Kerala S.E.B.
340
, it was held that State Electricity Board
is not Government and an Assistant Engineer of the Board is not a public officer.
331
AIR 1958 SC 274.
332
AIR 1963 SC 424.
333
AIR 1984 SC 1004.
334
1972 KLT 74.
335
AIR 1966 SC 1068.
336
AIR 1963 SC 424.
337
AIR 1965 SC 11, 15.
338
AIR 1989 Ker276.
339
AIR 1969 SC 674.
340
AIR 1989 Ker86.
Exemption from Arrest and Personal Appearance
S.81 provides that in a suit instituted against a public officer in respect of any
act purporting to be done by him in his official capacity-
(a) the defendant shall not be liable to arrest nor his property to attachment
otherwise than in execution of a decree, and,
(b) where the Court is satisfied that the defendant cannot absent himself from
his duty without detriment to the public service, it shall exempt him from appearing in
person.
Section 82 provides that where in a suit by or against the Govt. or against the
public officer, in respect of any act purporting to be done by him in his official
capacity, a decree is passed against the Union of India or a State or the Public Officer,
such decree shall not be executed unless it remains unsatisfied for the period of 3
months computed from the date of such decree.
These provisions are significant because they establish a structured process for legal
actions involving the government and public offices. They promote fairness, allow the
government to address grievances before litigation, and ensure that government cases
are conducted efficiently and in accordance with the law. Sections 79 to 82 of the CPC
lay down the rules and procedures for filing and defending suits involving the
government and public offices. They aim to facilitate a transparent and structured
process for legal actions against the government while safeguarding the government's
interests and ensuring due process.
TOPIC 34
SUIT BY OR AGAINST MINOR OR
PERSON OF UNSOUND MIND (Order XXXII)
Order XXXII of the Code of Civil Procedure, 1908 (CPC), deals with suits filed
by or against minors or persons of unsound mind. This order is essential for protecting
the legal rights and interests of individuals who may not have the capacity to fully
understand or represent themselves in legal proceedings. Order XXXII CPC
recognizes that minors (individuals below the age of majority) and persons of unsound
mind may lack the legal capacity to sue or be sued in their own name. Therefore, they
require representation in civil suits.
Who May Represent:
Minors: A minor must be represented by a guardian appointed by the court or by a next
friend.
Persons of Unsound Mind: A person of unsound mind must be represented by a
guardian appointed by the court or by a next friend.
A "next friend" is a person who represents the minor or person of unsound mind in
a suit. They act on behalf of the minor or person of unsound mind. A "guardian"
appointed by the court is a person appointed by the court to act in the best interests of
the minor or person of unsound mind during the legal proceedings.
Procedure for Suits Involving Minors or Persons of Unsound Mind:
A suit filed by or against a minor or person of unsound mind should include a
statement in the plaint about their minority or unsoundness of mind. The court may
appoint a next friend or guardian for the minor or person of unsound mind. This
appointment is made to ensure that the interests of the minor or person of unsound
mind are adequately protected throughout the legal process. The next friend or
guardian is responsible for representing the interests of the minor or person of unsound
mind during the course of the suit. They act on their behalf, make legal decisions, and
ensure that the minor or person of unsound mind is properly represented. The court
supervises the proceedings involving minors or persons of unsound mind to ensure that
their rights and interests are safeguarded. If a suit involving a minor or person of
unsound mind is settled or compromised, the court must approve the compromise to
ensure that it is in the best interests of the minor or person of unsound mind.
A minor is a person who has not attained the age of 18 years but in the case of
a minor of whose person or property, a guardian or next friend has been appointed by
the court or whose property is under the superintendence of court of ward’s, the age of
minority is 21 years.
341
Order XXXII prescribes the procedure of suits to which the minor or person of
unsound mind are parties. Order XXXII has been specifically enacted to protect the
interest of minors and persons of unsound mind and to ensure that they are properly
represented by persons who are qualified to act as such.
Order XXXII Rule 1 provides that every suit by a minor shall be instituted in
his name by a person who in such suit shall be called the next friend of the minor. If it
is not, the plaint will be taken off the file with cost to be paid by the pleader or other
person by whom it was presented.
342
In Akku Amma v. Kunhi Raman Nair
343
, it was held that the insanity of one of
the plaintiffs not formally represented. The decree cannot be set aside unless prejudice
is proved.
Where a suit has been instituted on behalf of a minor by next friend, the court
may at any stage of the suit order the next friend to give security for the payment of all
costs incurred by the defendant.
344
Where the defendant is a minor, the court on being satisfied of his minority,
shall appoint a proper person to be guardian for the suit for such minor.
345
An order
for the appointment of a guardian for the suit may be obtained upon the application in
the name and on behalf of the minor such application shall be supported by an affidavit
verifying the fact that the proposed guardian has no interest in the matters in
controversy in the suit adverse to that of the minor and that he is a fit person to be so
appointed.
346
341
Explanation to O.XXX, R.1.
342
O.XXX, R.2.
343
ILR 1963 (1) Ker.76.
344
O.XXXII, R.2A.
345
Order XXXII, Rule 3(1).
346
O.XXXII R.3 (2).
In Narayanan Namboothiripad v. Gopalan Nair
347
, it was held that a minor can
avoid a decree passed against him on the ground of gross negligence even if he has not
succeed in proving fraud or collusion on the part of guardian. The failure of guardian
to defend the suit when there was a perfectly good defence available resulting in
serious loss would therefore amount to gross and culpable negligence enabling the
minor to set aside the decree against him.
In Sankara Narayanan Namboori v. Kali
348
, it was held that the negligence on
the part of the guardian ad litem in not pursuing a defence available to the minor in a
normal manner would constitute a sufficient ground to avoid the decree.
In Balakrishnan Kammathi v. Ganeesha Pai
349
, it was held that a minor mother
is incompetent to be a guardian.
No guardian or a next friend can, without the leave of the court receive any
amount or movable property on behalf of a minor by way of compromise, nor enter
into any agreement or compromise on his behalf in the suit.
350
No next friend for the suit shall without the leave of the court withdraw the suit
on behalf of the minor.
351
In Savithri Anderjanam v. Valapad Nair Bank
352
, it was held that compromise
by guardian of minor defendant without leave of court is only voidable at the instance
of the minor.
In George v. Maria
353
, it was held that where in a suit by a minor to set aside a
compromise decree on the ground that compromise was prejudice to his interest the
sanction of the Court for the compromise is proved then the contention that the order
347
1960 (11111) KLR 803.
348
1655 KLT 660.
349
ILR 1654 TC 1909.
350
Order XXXII, Rule 6 (1).
351
Order XXXII, Rule 7.
352
1957 KLJ 1157.
353
AIR 1957 TC 91.
of the Court granting sanction does not show that the compromise was for his benefit
or that it does not satisfy the requirements of O.32 R.7 is of no avail. The real question
for consideration in such cases is whether the compromise was in the interests of the
minor and entered in with bonafide by his guardian or next friend.
A minor plaintiff or a minor not a party to the suit, on whose behalf an
application is pending shall on attaining majority elect whether he will proceed with
the suit or application.
354
Where he elects to proceed with the suit or application, he
shall apply for an order discharging the next friend and for leave to proceed in his own
name.
355
A decree passed against a minor without appointment of next friend or guardian
is null and void. Rule 15 of Order XXXII provides that all the provisions provided
under Order XXXII Rule 1 to 14 shall apply to persons of unsound mind except the
provision to furnish security of cost.
In Ramaswami Gounder v. Meera Lebba
356
, it was held that the scope of enquiry
under R.15 of O.32 is not the same as that contemplated under the Lunacy Act. Even
if a person is not declared to be a lunatic under the Lunacy Act, it is open for the Court
trying the suit to appoint a guardian after satisfying itself as to his infirmness. The
inherent power of the Court to stay proceedings in the suit or to transfer the same
cannot be exercised in such a case for the reason that a Lunacy Petition regarding him
is pending before another Court.
In Marci Celine D’Souza v. Renie Fernandez
357
, it was held that not necessary
that there should be a preliminary enquiry. What is required is only that there must be
some prima facie proof to prove the infirmity.
354
Order XXXII, Rule 12 (1).
355
Order XXXII, Rule 12 (2).
356
AIR1954 TC 380.
357
AIR 1998 KER. 280.
In Maideen Bava Rawther v. John Xavier
358
, it was held that when an application
is filed before the Court under O.32 R.15, the Court cannot shirk from its responsibility
of holding an enquiry and solely depend upon the medical certificate.
Order XXXII CPC is significant because it protects the rights and interests of
minors and persons of unsound mind in civil litigation. It ensures that they have proper
representation and that their legal affairs are conducted in a manner that serves their
best interests. This order is essential for upholding fairness and justice in cases
involving individuals with limited legal capacity. Order XXXII of the CPC establishes
the framework for the representation of minors and persons of unsound mind in civil
suits. It ensures that their interests are properly protected and that legal proceedings
are conducted in a manner that serves their best interests.
TOPIC 35
SUIT BY INDIGENT PERSON (Order XXXIII)
Order XXXIII of the Code of Civil Procedure, 1908 (CPC), deals with suits filed by
indigent persons, often referred to as "pauper suits." This provision is designed to
ensure that individuals who cannot afford the costs associated with filing a civil suit
are not deprived of access to justice. Order XXXIII allows a person to sue as an
indigent person if they satisfy the court that they have insufficient means to pay the
court fees and other costs associated with the suit. In other words, it is for those who
are genuinely unable to afford the expenses of litigation.
The person seeking to file a suit as an indigent person must submit an application,
referred to as a "pauper application," to the court where they wish to initiate the suit.
This application should be accompanied by a plaint (a written statement of the claim)
358
ILR 1991 (1) Ker.700.
and an affidavit detailing the person's inability to pay court fees. The affidavit should
include details of the person's income, assets, and liabilities. It must demonstrate that
the person falls within the definition of an indigent person as per Order XXXIII CPC.
The court examines the pauper application and the accompanying affidavit. It may also
request additional information or documents to verify the person's financial condition.
After due scrutiny, if the court is satisfied that the person is genuinely indigent and
unable to pay court fees, it may grant permission to the applicant to file the suit as a
pauper. In such cases, the court exempts the person from paying court fees. If the
person filing the pauper suit does not have an advocate, the court may assign one at
the expense of the state to represent the pauper's interests in the case.
A person filing a pauper suit enjoys the same rights and privileges as any other party
to a civil suit. They can present evidence, cross-examine witnesses, and make legal
arguments. If a pauper ultimately wins the suit, they are not required to reimburse the
state for the court fees waived. If the suit is dismissed, the court may order the pauper
to pay the court fees that would have been payable had they not been granted pauper
status. Pauper suits should be filed in good faith and must be based on genuine claims.
False or frivolous pauper applications can lead to adverse consequences, including
dismissal of the suit and penalties.
Order XXXIII provides for filing of suits by indigent person. This order enables
the persons who are too poor to pay court fees and allows them to institute suit without
payment of requisite court fees. It is said that poverty should not be the cause of denial
of justice. Generally a plaintiff suing in a court of law is bound to pay court fees
prescribed under the Court Fees and Suit Valuation Act at the time of presentation of
suit. This order exempt a disabled person from paying the court fee at the first instance
and allows him to proceed his suit in ‘Forma Pauperis’.
A person is an indigent person if he is not possessed of sufficient means to
enable him to pay the fee prescribed by law for the plaint in such suit or where no such
fee is prescribed if he is not entitled to property worth Rs.1,000/- other than the
property exempt from attachment in execution of a decree and the subject matter of
the suit.
359
In Balakrishnan v. Narayanan Nair
360
, it was held that application under Order
33 can be filed after the institution of the suit.
In Joseph v. Jess Raphael
361
, it was held that O.38 R.6 only directs the Court to
give notice to the Government pleader. Court need not wait for Government pleader’s
report to decide the pauper application. Court can decide the application on the
evidence adduced by contesting parties.
In A. Prabhakaran v. K.P. Neelakantan
362
, it was held that when the house is
purchased on loan, the property hypothecated to the bank and loan remains
outstanding, property cannot be converted into cash to pay Court-fee.
In Resleth v. Indian Bank
363
, it was held that when wife is not in possession of
any immovable property, the fact that the husband is having sufficient income cannot
be taken as a ground to disallow the wife to file the appeal as an indigent person.
In Grand v. National Insurance
364
, it was held that a partnership firm cannot sue
as an indigent even on the ground that the firm is not possessed of sufficient assets.
In Narayana Krishna v. Kalliyanikutty Amma
365
, it was held that person suing
in representative capacity on behalf of Tarwad is entitled to the benefit of the section
though the tharavad is possessed of sufficient means.
359
Explanation to O.XXXIII, R.1.
360
1984 KLT 374.
361
1987 KLN 536.
362
AIR 1988 Ker.267.
363
AIR 1992 Ker.359.
364
ILR 1995 (1) Ker.87.
365
1970 KLJ 955.
In Murukesan v. District Collector, Ernakulam
366
, when the plaintiff succeed in
a pauper suit partially and lost substantially in a suit for recovery of compensation for
injuries sustained in a scooter accident it was held that the liability of payment of
Court-fee must be considered as per provisions to S.35 and R.12 of O.33.
Order XXXIII Rule 2 deals with the contents of application. Accordingly every
application for permission to sue as an indigent person shall contain the following
particulars:
1. The particulars required in regard to plaints in the suit;
2. The schedule of any movable or immovable property belonging to
the applicant with the estimate value thereof;
3. Signature and verifications as provided in Order VI.
In Sadanandan v. Prabhakaran
367
, it was held that the relevant date for deciding
whether the petitioner is entitled to sue in forma pauperis is the date of presentation of
the petition. The fact that he would be receiving his monthly emolument in future need
not be considered for the purpose of the case.
The application should be presented by the applicant in person to the court,
unless he is exempted from appearing in Court, in which case application may be
presented by authorized agent who can answer all material questions relating to the
application.
368
Where there are two or more plaintiffs, it can be presented by any of
them. The suit commences from the moment an application to sue in Forma Pauperis
is presented.
369
Order XXXIII Rule 5 provides the circumstances by which the court will reject
the application for permission to sue as an indigent person. They are;
1. where the application is not famed and presented in the prescribed manner;
or
366
1980 KLN 764.
367
ILR 1977 (1) Ker.643.
368
O.XXX, R.3.
369
Proviso to O.XXX, R.3.
2. where the applicant is not an indigent person;
3. where the applicant has within 2 months from before the presentation of application,
dispose off any property fraudulently or in order to get permission to sue as an indigent
person
4. where the applicant has entered into any agreement with reference to the subject
matter of the proposed suit under which another person has obtained interest;
5. where the suit appears to be barred by law;
6. where any other person has entered into an agreement with the applicant to finance
cost of litigation.
In the first instance an enquiry into the means of application should be made by
the Chief Ministerial Officer of the court. The court may adopt report submitted by
such officer or may itself may make an enquiry.
370
Where the application submitted by applicant is in proper form and is duly
represented, the court may examine the applicant regarding the merits of the claim and
the property of the applicant. The court shall then issue notice to the opposite party
and Govt. pleader and fix a day for receiving evidence.
371
In Balakrishnan v. Narayanan Nair
372
, it was held that the failure to issue notice
to the Government pleader is not fatal to the application under O.33 R.6. If the High
Court is satisfied of the grounds enumerated under Section 115 it cannot interfere
because it differs from the conclusion of the subordinates Court on the question of fact
or law.
On the day fixed, the court shall examine the witness if any produced by either
party, hear their argument and either allow or reject the application.
373
Where an
application to sue as an indigent person is granted, it shall be deemed to be a plaint in
the suit and shall proceed in the ordinary manner.
374
370
Order XXXIII, Rule 1A.
371
Order XXXIII, Rule 5.
372
19984 KLN 173.
373
O.XXXIII, R.7.
374
O.XXXIII, R.8.
In Mathai Brijitha v. Thankapan Nair
375
, it was held that the party need not pay
Court-fee on the review petition at the time of filing it, if it is a proceeding connected
with the suit.
The court may assign a pleader to an indigent person if he is not represented by
a pleader.
376
Under Order XXXIII Rule 8 and under Order XXXIII Rule 9A, a
defendant can also plead set off or counter claim as an indigent person.
Where the court rejects an application to sue as an indigent person, it will grant
time to the applicant to pay court fee. Where an indigent person succeeds in a suit the
State Govt. can recover court fees from the party as per the direction in the decree and
it will be the first charge on the subject matter of the suit.
377
In Dev v. Chief Secretary, Government of Kerala
378
, the plaintiff suiting as
indigent person succeeds in part and fails in part. It was held that he has liability to pay
court fee in proportion to his success under R.10.
Where an indigent person fails in the suit, the court fees shall be paid by him.
379
Where the suit abates on account of the death of a plaintiff, such court fees should be
recovered from the estate of the deceased plaintiff.
Order XXXIII CPC is significant because it ensures that access to justice is not
restricted solely by financial means. It allows individuals who are genuinely indigent
to pursue their legal rights and claims without the burden of court fees. This provision
is crucial in promoting equity and inclusivity in the legal system. Order XXXIII of the
CPC provides a mechanism for indigent persons to file civil suits without the financial
burden of court fees. It aims to ensure that individuals with genuine claims have access
to justice and can seek legal redress, regardless of their financial circumstances.
TOPIC 36
375
1992 (3) Cur.364.
376
O.XXXIII, R.9.
377
O.XXXIII, R.10.
378
ILR 2003 (3) Ker.218.
379
O.XXXIII, R.11.
INTERPLEADER SUIT (Section 88, Order XXXV)
An interpleader suit is a legal action taken by a person or entity who holds property or
funds claimed by two or more parties and is uncertain about which claimant is entitled
to the property or funds. The objective of an interpleader suit is to seek court guidance
on the rightful owner of the property or funds and to avoid being caught in the middle
of conflicting claims. This legal mechanism is governed by Section 88 and Order
XXXV of the Code of Civil Procedure, 1908 (CPC).
Section 88 of the CPC provides the basis for instituting an interpleader suit. It states:
"Where two or more persons claim adversely to one another the same debt, sum of
money or other property, movable or immovable, from another person, being a
stakeholder, and such other person claims no interest in the subject-matter of the claim,
he may institute a suit of interpleader against all the claimants for the purpose of
obtaining a decision as to the person to whom the payment or delivery shall be made
and of obtaining indemnity for himself:
Provided that where any such person has transferred any such debt, sum or other
property for the purpose of avoiding payment to any claimant or to any other person
having a right thereto, such transfer shall be void as against all claimants."
According to S.88 where two or more persons claim adversely to one another the same
debt, sum of money or other property, movable or immovable property, from “another
person”, who claims no interest therein other than for charges or costs and who is ready
to pay or deliver it to the rightful claimant, such other person may institute a suit of
interpleader against all the claimants for the purpose of obtaining a decision as to the
person to whom the payment or delivery shall be made and of obtaining indemnity for
himself. Proviso to the section states that where any suit is pending in which the rights
of all parties can properly be decided, no such suit of interpleader shall be instituted.
Section 88 comes into play when a third party, referred to as the "stakeholder," holds
property, funds, or debts claimed by multiple parties who are in conflict over
ownership. The stakeholder, in such a situation, seeks the court's intervention to
determine the rightful claimant and protect themselves from legal repercussions. The
primary objective of instituting an interpleader suit is to obtain a court decision on the
rightful recipient of the property, funds, or debts in question. The stakeholder seeks
the court's direction to make a payment or delivery to the rightful claimant.
The stakeholder also seeks indemnity through the interpleader suit, which means
protection from any future claims or liabilities related to the property or funds in
question. This is to ensure that the stakeholder is not held liable for making an incorrect
payment. The proviso in Section 88 emphasizes that any transfer of property or funds
by the stakeholder, with the intent to avoid payment to a claimant or any other rightful
recipient, is considered void and not valid against the claimants.
Illustration
P is in possession of a jewel box, wherein he claims no interest himself, and is
ready and willing to hand over it to the rightful owner. The box is claimed by A as well
as by B. P may file an interpleader suit against A and B. the court will decide the
rightful owner of the jewel box as between A and B
Order XXXV of the CPC provides detailed procedural rules for interpleader suits. It
outlines the steps to be followed by the stakeholder when initiating the suit and the
process to be followed during the course of the suit. This order covers issues such as
the filing of the plaint, service of notices to the claimants, their response, and the court's
decision.
Order XXXV Rule 1 provides that in every suit of interpleader the plaint shall state the
following matters:
a. That the plaintiff claims no interest in the subject matter in dispute other than
for charges or costs;
b. The claims made by the defendants severally; and
c. That there is no collusion between the plaintiff and any of the defendants;
In National Insurance Co. Ltd. v. Antony T. George
380
, it was held that when
there is no dispute or when dispute is settled or could be decided in a pending litigation
an interpleader suit cannot be filed.
Order XXXV Rule 2 provides that where the thing claimed is capable of being
paid into court or placed in the custody of the court, the plaintiff may be required to
pay or place it before the court.
Order XXXV Rule 3 provides that where any of the defendants in an
interpleader suit is actually suing the plaintiff in respect of the subject matter of the
suit, the court in which the suit against the plaintiff is pending shall on being informed
by the court in which the interpleader suit has been instituted stay the proceedings as
against him; and his costs in the suit so stayed may be provided for in such suit; but if,
and in so far as, they are not provided for in that suit, they may be added to his costs
incurred in the interpleader-suit.
Order XXXV Rule 4 provides that at the first hearing the court may declare
that the plaintiff is discharged from all his liabilities to the defendant in respect of the
thing claimed, award him his cost, and dismiss him from suit or if it thinks that justice
or convenience is so require, retain all parties until the final disposal of the suit.
In Justice Thressiamma v. Jusinge Jerome
381
, it was held that the plaintiff has to
seek to implead all claimants before he can claim discharge under R.4 of O.35 C.P.C.
Order XXXV Rule 5 provides that nothing in the order shall be deemed to enable
agents to sue their principals, or tenants to sue their landlords, for the purpose of
compelling them to interplead with any person other than persons making claim
through such principals or landlords.
Illustrations
380
1989 (2) KLT SN 71.
381
AIR 1958 Ker.304.
(a) A deposits a box of jewels with B as his agent. C alleges that the jewels were
wrongfully obtained from him by A, and claims them from B. B cannot institute an
interpleader-suit against A and C.
(b) A deposits a box of jewels with B as his agent. He then writes to C for the
purpose of making the jewels a security for a debt due from himself to C. A afterwards
alleges that C’s debt is satisfied, and C alleges the contrary. Both claims the jewels
from B. B may institute an interpleader-suit against A and C.
Order XXXV Rule 6 provides that where the suit is properly instituted, the court
may provide for the cost of the original plaintiff by giving him a charge on the thing
claimed or in some other effectual way.
Interpleader suits are significant because they offer a legal remedy to third parties who
find themselves caught between conflicting claims to property, funds, or debts. These
suits help resolve disputes efficiently and provide clarity on rightful ownership while
protecting the stakeholder from potential legal complications. Section 88 and Order
XXXV of the CPC establish the legal framework for interpleader suits, allowing a
stakeholder to seek court intervention when faced with conflicting claims to property,
funds, or debts. These provisions aim to achieve a fair and just resolution of disputes
while safeguarding the interests of the stakeholder.
TOPIC 37
SUMMARY PROCEDURE (Order XXXVII)
382
Order XXXVII of the Code of Civil Procedure, 1908 (CPC), deals with the summary
procedure for the recovery of specific types of debts. This procedure is designed to
provide a quicker and more efficient legal process for cases involving straightforward
claims. The summary procedure under Order XXXVII of the CPC is primarily
applicable to suits for the recovery of money only and involves claims based on
promissory notes, bills of exchange, hundis, or a written contract, whether express or
382
In Aravindakshan v. Sukumaran, it was held that O.37 of the Civil Procedure Code substituted by
the Civil Procedure Code (Amendment) Act, 1976, is in force in Kerala with effect from 1.2.1977 and
continues to be force.
implied. The plaintiff (the person claiming the debt) initiates the summary procedure
by filing a plaint (a formal written statement of claim) accompanied by an affidavit
verifying the claim. In the affidavit, the plaintiff provides all necessary details of the
claim, including the amount owed and the basis for the claim. Instead of issuing a
summons to the defendant (the person against whom the claim is made), the court
issues a summons for judgment. This summons calls upon the defendant to either admit
the claim or contest it.
Upon receiving the summons for judgment, the defendant has two options: If the
defendant admits the claim, they can file a statement agreeing to pay the claimed
amount and any costs. The court then passes a judgment in favor of the plaintiff based
on this admission. If the defendant wishes to contest the claim, they must file an
affidavit stating the grounds of defense within the specified time frame. The court then
proceeds to hear the case in a regular manner. If the defendant contests the claim, the
case proceeds to a regular trial. The court will hear both parties, examine evidence,
and make a decision based on the merits of the case. If the defendant fails to respond
to the summons for judgment within the specified time or if the defendant's defense
appears to be frivolous, the court may pass a summary judgment in favor of the
plaintiff.
The summary procedure is quicker and more efficient than a regular civil suit, making
it suitable for straightforward debt recovery cases. It reduces the time and costs
associated with litigation, benefiting both parties. The procedure provides a
mechanism for the speedy recovery of debts based on clear documentary evidence.
Courts and Classes of Suits to which the Order is to Apply
Rule 1 (1) provides that this order shall apply to the following courts namely;
(a) High courts, city civil courts and courts of small causes; and
(b) other courts.
In respect of courts referred in clause (b), the High court may by notification in
the official gazette, restrict the operation of this order only to such categories of suits
as it deems proper, and may from time to time, as the circumstances of the case may
require, by subsequent notification in the official gazette, further restrict, enlarge or
vary, the categories of suits to be brought under the operation of this order as it deems
proper.
383
Rule 1 (2) provides that the order applies to the following classes of suits,
namely:-
(a) suits upon bills of exchange, hundies and promissory notes;
(b) suits in which plaintiff seeks to recover a debt or liquidated demand in money payable
by the defendant, with or without of interest, arising,-
(i) on a written contract; or
(ii) on an enactment, where the sum sought to be recovered is a fixed sum of
money or in the nature of a debt other than a penalty; or
(iii) on a guarantee, where the claim against the principal is in respect of a debt
or liquidated demand only.
In State Bank v. Ashit Shipping Services (p) Ltd
384
, it was held that O.37 C.P.C.
does not provide for a claim based on indemnity bond because in cases of claims on
indemnity bonds the loss would first have to be proved. A summary procedure cannot
be adopted in such cases.
Institution of Summary Suits
Rule 2 (1) provides that a suit may be instituted by presenting a plaint which
shall contain,-
a) a specific averment to the effect that the suit is filed under this order;
b) that no relief, which does not fall within the ambit of this rule, has been claimed in the
plaint; and
383
Proviso to R.1 (1).
384
2002 (4) SCC 736.
(c) the inscription, immediately below the number of the suit in the title of the suit,
namely:-“Under Order XXXVII of the Code of Civil Procedure, 1908”
The defendant shall not defend the suit referred to in R.2 (1) unless he enters an
appearance and in default of his entering an appearance the allegation in the plaint
shall be deemed to be admitted and the plaintiff shall be entitled to a decree for any
sum, not exceeding the sum mentioned in the summons, together with interest at the
rate specified, if any, up to the date of the decree and such sum for costs as may be
determined by the High Court from time to time by rules made in that behalf and such
decree may be executed forthwith.
385
Procedure for the Appearance of Defendant
Rule 3 (1) provides that the plaintiff shall, together with summons, serve on the
defendant, a copy of the plaint and annexure thereto, and the defendant may, within
ten days of such service, enter appearance and he shall file an address for service of
notices on him.
Rule 3 (3) provides that on the day of entering appearance, notice of such
appearance shall be given by the defendant to the plaintiff’s pleader, or, if the plaintiff
sues in person, to the plaintiff himself, either by notice delivered at or sent by a pre-
paid letter directed to the address of the plaintiff’s pleader or of the plaintiff, as the
case may be.
Rule 3 (4) provides that if the defendant enters an appearance, the plaintiff shall
serve on the defendant a summons returnable not less than ten days from the date of
service supported by an affidavit stating that in his belief there is no defence to the suit.
Rule 3 (5) provides that the defendant may, at any time within ten days from the
service of summons for judgment, by affidavit or otherwise apply for leave to defend
such suit where a part of the amount claimed by the plaintiff is admitted by the
defendant to be due from him. Leave to defend the suit shall not be granted unless the
amount so admitted is deposited in court.
386
Rule 3 (6) provides that at the hearing of such summons for judgment
385
R.2 (3).
386
Proviso to R. 3 (5).
(a) if the defendant has not applied for leave to defend, or if such application has been
made or refused, the plaintiff shall be entitled for judgment forthwith; or
(b) if the defendant is permitted to defend as to the whole or any part
of the claim, the Court or Judge may direct him to give such security within
such time fixed, on failure, the plaintiff shall be entitled to judgment.
The Court or Judge may, for sufficient cause shown by the defendant, excuse
the delay of the defendant in entering an appearance or in applying for leave to defend
the suit.
387
In O.N.G.C. Ltd. v. State Bank of India
388
, it was held that in summary suit for
recovery of money assessed as liquidated damages, order allowing application for
leave to defend by bank, giving bank guarantee is liable to be dismissed in absence of
plea relating to fraud.
In Raj Duggal v. Ramesh Kumar
389
, it was held that summary judgments under
O.37 should not be granted where serious conflict as to matter of fact or where any
difficulty or issues as to law arises. The Court should not reject the defence of the
defendant merely because of the inherent implausibility or its inconsistency.
In Sunil Enterprises v. SBIC & Bank Ltd
390
, it was held that unconditional leave
to defend summary suit must be granted where defence raised by defendant is not
totally defenceless or illusory.
Power to Set Aside Decree
Rule 4 provides that after decree the court may, under special circumstances, set
aside the decree, and if necessary stay or set aside execution, and may give leave to
the defendant to appear to the summons and defend the suit, if it seems reasonable to
the Court so to do, and no such terms as the Court thinks fit.
Power to Order to Bill, etc., to be Deposited with Officer of Court
R.5 provides that in any proceeding under this order the Court may order the
bill, hundi or note on which the suit is founded to be forthwith deposited with an officer
387
R.3 (7).
388
AIR 2000 SC 2548.
389
1991 Supp. (1) SCC 191.
390
1998 (5) SCC 354.
of the Court, and may further order that all proceedings shall be stayed until the
plaintiff gives security for the costs thereof.
Recovery of Cost of Noting Non-Acceptanceof Dishonoured Bill or Note
R.6 provides that the holder of every dishonoured bill of exchange or promissory
note shall have the same remedies for the recovery of the expenses incurred in noting
the same for non-acceptance or non-payment, or otherwise, by reason of such
dishonour, as he has under this order for the recovery of the amount of such bill or
note.
Procedure in Suits
Rule 7 provides that shall be the same as the procedure in suits instituted in the
ordinary manner.
The summary procedure is limited to cases involving specific types of debts and clear
documentary evidence. If the defendant contests the claim, the case may still proceed
to a regular trial, negating some of the time-saving advantages of summary procedure.
Order XXXVII of the CPC provides a summary procedure for the efficient recovery
of debts based on specific types of written instruments and clear documentary
evidence. It streamlines the legal process by allowing for quicker judgments when the
defendant does not contest the claim or when the defense appears frivolous. However,
it is limited in its application to certain types of claims.
TOPIC 38
APPEALS, REFERENCE, REVIEW AND REMAND
(Sections 96 to 109 Order XXXXI to XLVII)
The Code of Civil Procedure, 1908 (CPC), contains a comprehensive set of provisions
governing the processes of appeals, reference to higher courts, review of judgments,
and remand of cases. These provisions, found in Sections 96 to 109 and Order XXXI
to XLVII of the CPC, outline the procedures for seeking redressal, clarification, and
re-examination of civil cases.
Appeal
The literary meaning of appeal is, to demand another judgment by a higher court.
It is a creature of statute. The Code does not define appeals but it can be said that any
application by a party to an Appellate Court asking it to set aside or revise a decision
of a lower court, is an appeal. It is the judicial examination of the decision of an inferior
court.
Litigants are not entitled to appeal in every matter, as a matter of right. An appeal
lies only if it is expressly prescribe by any Act or Rules. Only a party to the suit can
prefer an appeal. In the event of his death his legal representative can file an appeal.
Appeals (Sections 96 to 109 and Order XLI to XLVII):
Sections 96 to 109: These sections deal with the right to appeal from decrees and orders
of civil courts. They specify who can file an appeal, the grounds for appeal, the
procedure for filing and hearing appeals, and the powers of appellate courts. Notable
sections include Section 96 (appeals from original decrees), Section 100 (second
appeals), and Section 104 (questions to be decided by appellate court).
Order XLI to XLVII: These orders provide procedural rules for filing and prosecuting
appeals. They cover issues such as the contents of appeal memorials, the procedure for
hearings, the disposal of appeals, and the enforcement of decrees.
In Sreedharan v. Sreedharan Embrandiri
391
, appeal was preferred with dead
person alone shown as respondent. It was held that application for amendment of
memorandum by substituting his legal representative must be brought within the time
as extended under S.5 of the Limitations Act or time prescribed for instituing the
appeal.
When the appeal is against an order made in execution of a money decree the
judgment debtor shall deposit or furnish security for the decretal amount. The
provision requiring the judgment debtor to furnish security is no mandatory. If the
391
1967 KLT 1016.
appeal is not properly drawn up, the appeal may be rejected or returned to the party for
the purpose of being amended.
An appeal may lie from an original decree passed ex-parte.
392
A consent or
compromise decree is not appealable.
393
When an appeal is represented after the limitation period, leave of the court has
to be obtained for condition of delay. If a party does not file the appeal within the time
of limitation, it is mandatory for him to present the appeal supported by an affidavit to
satisfy the court that he had sufficient cause for not preferring the appeal within such
period. An appeal shall be presented within 30 days, if the appeal is to the District
Court and 90 days, if it is to the High Court. The time needed for taking copies of the
decree is excluded. Sec.96 (4) says that no appeal shall lie except on a question of law
from a decree of a small cause court or when the amount or value of subject matter
does not exceed Rs.10,000/-.
394
In Abraham Joseph v. Kuruvilla
395
, it was held that a party or a person is said to
be aggrieved by a decision when it operates directly or indirectly upon his pecuniary,
personal or proprietory interest.
In Baldev Singh v. Surinder Mohan Sharma and Others
396
, it was held that an
appeal would be maintainable only at the instance of a person aggrieved by and
dissatisfied with the judgment and decree. Hence, an appeal filed merely in furtherance
of separate pending dispute between the parties is not maintainable.
Form of Appeal
Order XXXXI, Rule 1 provides for the form of appeal; the presentation of
appeal; the documents to accompany the Memorandum of appeal; the contents of the
392
Sec.96 (2).
393
Sec.96 (3).
394
w.e.f. 01-07-2002.
395
1990 (1) KLT SN 46.
396
2003 (1) SCC 34.
Memorandum and furnishing of security for the decretal amount by the judgment
debtor. The appeal shall be preferred in the form of a memorandum signed by the
appellant or his pleader along with a copy of the decree appealed from and the
judgment. The memorandum of appeal should contain the grounds on which appeal is
preferred.
Where a memorandum of appeal is presented in the court by an unauthorized
person, it is no appeal at all and the court may reject it. Similarly in the absence of a
copy of the decree filing of the appeal would be incompetent, defective and
incompetent.
Even though pleas not raised in trial court cannot be raised in appeal, pure
questions of law may be raised for the first time in the Appellate Court. Eg. A
constitutional issue, a plea of res judicata, a plea of limitation etc.
Powers of the Appellate Court
The appellate court may:
1. Determine the case or
2. Remand the case or
3. Frame issue and refer for fresh trial
4. Take additional evidence.
By Order XXXXI, Rule 27, the Appellate Court may be allowed additional
evidence or document to be produced or witness to be examined.
Second Appeal (Sec.100)
Second appeals are appeals from the first Appellate Court. A second appeal lies
only where the High Court is satisfied that the case involves a substantial question of
law. The object of this section is to put an end to continuing litigations.
The court shall reject the appeal if there is no substantial question of law. A
party may file second appeal against an ex-parte decree. Similarly the question of fact
and law cannot be permitted to be raised for the first time in appeal.
397
397
Shamim Ahmad v. Rashida Begum, AIR 2001 All. 302.
As per Sec.100 the right of second appeal should be confined to cases where:-
1. Question of law is involved and
2. The question of law so involved is substantial.
In Lekshmi v. Lekshmanan
398
, it was held that the lower Appellate Court on
appreciation of evidence held that the appellants have not succeeded in establishing
their case of adverse possession and limitation and as it is a finding of fact this Court
cannot interfere with that finding in the second appeal.
In Babu Ram v. Indra Pal Singh
399
, it was held that High Court has no
jurisdiction in second appeal to make out a new case and render its findings thereon.
In Chandrabhagabai v. Ramakrishna
400
, it was held that High Court is justified
in not interfering, in second appeal, with concurrent findings of fact by Trial Court and
first Appellate Court that plaintiffs failed to establish their title to suit premises based
on relevant evidence.
In Rattan Dev v. Pasam Devi
401
, it was held that non application of mind by first
Appellate Court to evidence available on record. Trial Court decreed the suit on the
ground that though plaintiff had examined his special power of attorney and of other
witnesses, had himself abstained from appearing in witness box. First Appellate Court
drew an adverse inference against the plaintiff without applying its mind to the other
evidence though available on record. Held, such omission of first Appellate Court did
raise a substantial question of law, and matter was remanded to first Appellate Court
to hear the matter afresh.
No Further Appeal in Certain Cases
398
1989 (2) KLT 722.
399
1998 (6) SCC 358.
400
1998 (6) SCC 207.
401
2002 (7) SCC 441.
Notwithstanding anything contained in any Letters Patent for any High
Court or in any instrument having the force of law or in any other law for the time
being in force, where any appeal from an original or appellate decree or order is
heard and decided by a Single Judge of a High Court, no further appeal shall lie from
the judgment and decree of such Single Judge.
402
Sec.101 says, no second appeal shall lie except on the ground mentioned in
Sec.100. Sec.102 says, no second appeal shall lie from any decree, when the amount
or value of the subject matter of the original suit does not exceed Rs.25,000/-.
403
Appeal to the Supreme Court
404
Sec.109 of the Code has to be read with and subject to the provision of Article
133 of the Constitution:-
Article 133 of the Constitution is the main provision regarding appeals to a
Supreme Court from High Court in regard to civil matters. An appeal lies from any
judgment, decree or final order in a civil proceeding if a High Court certifies,-
1. That the case involves a substantial question of law;
2. In the opinion of the High Court the said question need to be decided by the Supreme
Court.
A party who wants to file an appeal to the Supreme Court shall move a petition
to the High Court stating the grounds of appeal and praying for a certificate that the
case involves a substantial question of law and that in the opinion of the court the said
question needs to be decided by the Supreme Court.
When the High Court refuses to issue the certificate, it should state the reasons
for refusal. The application shall also deposit the amount required to defray the
402
S.100A.
403
w.e.f. 01-07-2002.
404
Sec.109 & O.LXV, R.3.
expenses of translating, indexing, printing and transmitting the record of the suit to the
Supreme Court.
Under Article 136, the Supreme Court may by discretion grant special leave to
appeal from any judgment decree or order in any case made by any court or tribunal
in India.
Remand of a Case (Remand Order) (Order XXXXI, Rule 23)
The remand means, to send back. An appeal Court may remand a case whenever
it thinks it necessary in the interests of justice. In order to remand a case, certain
conditions are to be fulfilled.
1. The lower court has disposed off the suit on a preliminary point.
2. The whole suit has been determined upon a preliminary point.
3. The decree under appeal is reversed by the Appellate Court.
The Appellate Court cannot remand a case where the lower court had decided
the case on merits. When the lower court has omitted to frame an important issue, the
Appellate Court can remand the issue to the lower court. The Appellate Court may
direct what issue shall be tried in the case so remanded and shall send a copy of its
judgment and order to the lower court.
When a case is remanded, the court below is bound to comply with it. In a second
appeal also, the Appellate Court may frame an issue and remit the same to the lower
Appellate Court for finding. Normally, an Appellate Court should not remand a case
on a plea raised for the first time in appeal. The remand order should also state the time
within which the lower court shall return the evidence of the Appellate Court together
with its findings. The remand order should be clear, certain and definite and without
any ambiguity.
Remand of a case is at the discretion of the Appellate Court. The section is not
mandatory; the Appellate Court is not bound to remand a case. It can dispose off the
case by itself. Section 107 provides for the remand of cases by appellate courts to
lower courts for further proceedings. Appellate courts may remand a case when they
believe that additional evidence or a rehearing of certain issues is necessary for a just
decision. The lower court then conducts proceedings as directed by the appellate court.
Reference (S.113 & Order XLVI)
Section 113 and Order XLVI of the Code of Civil Procedure, 1908 (CPC), pertain to
the reference of certain issues to arbitration or other forms of alternative dispute
resolution. These provisions offer parties involved in civil litigation the option to
resolve specific issues through alternative methods, promoting faster and less
adversarial dispute resolution. Section 113 of the CPC deals with the reference of
disputes to arbitration. It states:
"Subject to the provisions of the Arbitration and Conciliation Act, 1996, and
notwithstanding anything contained in Part I or Part II of this Code, if any party to a
suit applies to the Court for reference of the dispute to arbitration, the Court shall, if it
is satisfied that the arbitration agreement is valid, refer the parties to arbitration."
Section 113 empowers a civil court to refer a dispute to arbitration if one of the parties
to a suit applies for such a reference, and the court is satisfied that the arbitration
agreement between the parties is valid. The section specifies that the provisions of the
Arbitration and Conciliation Act, 1996 (which governs arbitration in India), take
precedence over the CPC when it comes to the reference of disputes to arbitration.
In Pankajaksha Menon v. Union Bank of India
405
, it was held that if the question
sought to be raised is one which falls under the main part of S.133, the same cannot be
referred because the decree that will be passed in the suit is appealable, that means the
Appellate Court can correct the error, the Trial Court may commit.
405
1988 (2) KLT 142.
In Sushama v. Mercy Antony
406
, it was held that civil revision petition is
maintainable against orders passed by Appellate Court/District Court in appeals filed
under S.133 of the Panchayat Raj Act.
In Ganga Pratap v. Allahabad Bank
407
, it was held that reference can be made
as to the validity of an Act, Ordinance and Regulation.
In George v. Abraham
408
, it was held that a reference ordinarily would lie only
if the conditions and limitations prescribed in the Code are satisfied. Unless it is
satisfied that the determination of question is necessary for the disposal of the case, the
court need not make a reference under S.113 proviso of the CPC.
Reference of Questions to High Court
Order XLVI of the CPC deals with the reference of certain issues to a High
Court for its opinion. This order is particularly relevant when a question of law arises
in a civil case, and the court believes it necessary to obtain the High Court's opinion.
Order XLVI provides for the reference of questions of law, not issues of fact, to the
High Court. This allows for the clarification of legal points that may impact the
outcome of a case. The order outlines the procedure for making a reference to the High
Court, including the preparation of a statement of the case and the submission of the
case for the High Court's opinion.
Once the High Court receives the reference, it provides its opinion on the legal question
presented. While the High Court's opinion is not binding on the lower court, it carries
significant weight and is typically followed. Order XLVI enables the lower court to
seek guidance on complex legal issues, promoting consistency in legal interpretation
and contributing to the development of legal principles.
S.113 provides that subject to such conditions and limitations as may be
prescribed, any court may state a case and refer the same for the opinion of the High
Court, and the High Court may make such order thereon as it thinks fit.
406
1999 (3) KLT 818.
407
AIR 1958 SC 293.
408
1979 KLT 452.
Proviso to S.113 states that where the Court is satisfied that a case pending
before it involves a question as to the validity of any Act, Ordinance or Regulation
409
or of any provision contained in an Act, Ordinance or Regulation, the determination
of which is necessary for the disposal of the case, and is of opinion that such Act,
Ordinance, Regulation or provision is invalid or inoperative, but has not been so
declared by the High Court to which that Court is subordinate or by the Supreme Court,
the Court shall state a case setting out its opinion and the reasons thereof, and refer the
same for the opinion of the High Court. Order XLVI, Rule 1 provides that where,
before or on the hearing of a suit, or an appeal in which the decree is not subject to
appeal, or where, in the execution of such decree, any question of law or usage, having
the force of law arises, on which the court trying the suit or appeal or executing the
decree, entertains reasonable doubt, the Court may, either in its own motion or on the
application of any of the parties, draw up a statement of the facts of the case and the
point on which the doubt is entertained, and refer such statement with its own opinion
on the point for the decision of the High Court.
Court may Pass Decree Contingent upon Decision of High Court
Rule 2 provides that the court may either stay the proceedings or proceed in the
case notwithstanding such reference and may pass a decree or make such order
contingent upon the decision of the High Court on the point referred; but no decree or
order shall be executed in any case in which such reference is made, until the receipt
of a copy of the judgment of the High Court upon the reference.
Judgment of High Court to be Transmitted and the Case Disposed of Accordingly
Rule 3 provides that the High Court, after hearing the parties if they appear and
desire to be heard, shall decide the point so referred, and shall transmit a copy of its
judgment, under the signature of the Registrar, to the Court by which the reference was
made; and such court shall, on the receipt thereof, proceed to dispose of the case in
conformity with the decision of the High Court.
409
Explanation to S.113 states that “regulation” means any regulation of the Bengal, Bombay, or madras
Code or Regulation as defined in the General Clauses Act, 1897 (10of 1897), or in the General Clauses
Act of a State.
Power to Alter Decree of Court Making Reference
Rule 5 provides that the High Court may return the case for amendment, and
may alter, cancel or set aside any decree or order which the court making the reference
has passed or made in the case out of which the reference arose, and make such orders
as it thinks fit.
Power to Refer to High Court Questions as to Jurisdiction in Small Causes
By virtue of R.6 (1) where at any time before judgment a court in which a suit
has been instituted doubts whether the suit is cognizable by a court exercising small
cause jurisdiction or is not so cognizable, it may submit the record to the High Court
with a statement of its reasons for the doubt as to the nature of the suit.
By virtue of R.6 (2) on receiving the record and statement, the High Court may
order the court either to proceed with the suit or to return the plaint for presentation to
such other court as it may in its order declare to be competent to take cognizance of
the suit. Section 113 and Order XLVI of the CPC offer mechanisms for the reference
of disputes to arbitration or for obtaining the High Court's opinion on questions of law.
These provisions aim to provide parties with alternative avenues for dispute resolution
and to ensure the correct interpretation of legal issues in civil cases.
Review (S.114 & Order XLVII)
Section 114 and Order XLVII of the Code of Civil Procedure, 1908 (CPC), are
significant provisions that pertain to the review of judgments and orders passed by
civil courts in India. Section 114 of the CPC addresses the concept of reviewing
judgments and orders of civil courts. It states:
"Subject as aforesaid, any person considering himself aggrieved by a decree or order
from which an appeal is allowed by this Code, but from which no appeal has been
preferred, or by a decree or order from which no appeal is allowed by this Code, may
apply for a review of judgment to the Court which passed the decree or made the order,
and the Court may make such order thereon as it thinks fit."
Section 114 grants a limited right to parties to seek a review of judgments or orders
passed by civil courts. This right is available when no appeal is allowed by the CPC or
when an appeal is allowed but has not been preferred. The court has discretion in
deciding whether to grant a review, and it can make such orders as it deems fit. The
review is not a rehearing of the entire case but is meant to correct errors, clarify points
of law, or consider new evidence that was not available at the time of the original
judgment. While the CPC does not prescribe a specific time limit for filing a review
petition, it is generally expected that the application for review should be filed within
a reasonable time.
Order XLVII of the CPC provides procedural details for the filing and disposal of
review petitions. It includes rules related to the form and contents of the review
petition, the procedure for serving notice to the opposite party, and the court's powers
in conducting a review. The order specifies the format and content of the review
application, including the grounds for seeking a review. Upon the filing of a review
petition, the court may issue notice to the opposite party, allowing them to respond to
the grounds mentioned in the review application. Order XLVII allows the court to
consider new evidence if it is produced in support of the review petition and is relevant
to the case. The court has discretion in deciding whether to grant a review and can
either confirm, modify, or reverse its previous judgment or order.
S.114 provides that any person considering himself aggrieved,-
(a) by a decree or order from which an appeal is allowed by this Code, but from
which no appeal has been preferred,
(b) by a decree or order from which no appeal is allowed by this Code, or
(c) by a decision on a reference from a court of small causes, may apply for a
review of judgment to the court which passed the decree or made the order, and the
court may make such order thereon as it thinks fit.
In Mahakali Engneering Corporation v. R. C. Subramanyan
410
, in review
petition, an order was challenged which was passed in the absence of counsel of review
410
2000 (10) SCC 264.
petitioner. It was held that the High Court ought to have allowed review petition and
heard matter on merits.
In Chetan Metal Supply Corporation v. Union of India
411
, it was held that review
will lie where petitioner’s writ petition is wrongly placed on High Court along with
another group of petitions and dismissed with them.
In Bhaskaran v. Dhanalakshmi Bank Ltd
412
, an appeal was preferred against
order in execution. Appeal was allowed by allowing appellant to pay decree debt in
installments. It was held that the appellant cannot be treated as a party aggrieved by
the judgment.
In Mary v. Pappu
413
, no objection was raised at the time of hearing of the appeal
by the Division Bench that the appeal should be heard by a single Judge. It was held
that dismissal of the appeal on merits by the Division Bench cannot be said to have
suffered from any error apparent on the face of record.
In Karthy v. Parukutty
414
, it was held that subsequent filing of an appeal by a
co-party would not ipso facto take away the jurisdiction of the lower Court to consider
and dispose of the review, unless that Court had information that an appeal has been
disposed of.
Application for Review of Judgment
Order XLVII, Rule 1 (1) provides that any person considering himself
aggrieved-
(a) by a decree or order from which an appeal is allowed, but from which no appeal has
been preferred;
(b) by a decree or order from which no appeal is allowed, or
(c) by a decision on a reference from a Court of Small Causes, and who, from the
discovery of new and important matter or evidence which, after the exercise of due
diligence, was not within his knowledge, or could not be produced by him at the time
when the decree was passed or order made, or on account of some mistake or error
411
2000 (10) SCC 96.
412
1996 (1) KLT 463.
413
2001 (1) KLT 12.
414
1999 (3) KLT 850.
apparent on the face of record, or for any other sufficient reason, desires to obtain a
review of the decree passed or order made against him, may apply for a review of
judgment to the court which passed the decree or made the order.
Rule 1 (2) provides that a party who is not appealing from a decree or order may
apply for a review of the judgment notwithstanding the pendency of an appeal by some
other party except where the ground of such appeal is common to the applicant and the
appellant, or when, being respondent, he can present to the Appellate Court the case
on which he applies for review.
In Krishnan v. Radhalakshmi Amma
415
, it was held that the power of review of
order of controller has to be exercised in accordance with O.47 R.1 CPC.
In Cochin Port Trust v. Ernakulam Dt. L.D. and C Labour Union
416
, it was held
that change in the policy subsequent to the decision of the High Court cannot be a
ground for review of the judgment.
In Mohankumar v. Natarajan
417
, it was held that the successor in officer cannot
review the order suo motu.
In A.C. Estates v. Seerajudin & Co.
418
, it was held that discovery of new and
important matter is not a ground for review.
In Thungabadra Industries v. State of A.P.
419
, it was held that error must be
patent which will not admit elaborate argument. Two views cannot be taken, is a
ground for review.
In M.M.B. Catholicos v. M.P. Athnasius
420
, it was held that the decision matters
which do not come within the issue amounts to an ‘error apparent on the face of the
record’.
In K.P.M. Abdhul Rahimankutty Haji v. P.I. Naffesabi and Another
421
, it was
held that when there is no error apparent on the face of record there is no scope for
review.
415
AIR 1972 Ker.145.
416
ILR 1995 (3) Ker.449.
417
ILR 1998 (2) Ker.210.
418
AIR 1966 SC 635.
419
AIR 1964 SC 455.
420
AIR 1954 SC 1372.
421
ILR 2001 (1) Ker.453.
Application where Rejected
Rule 4 (1) provides that where it appears to the court that there is no sufficient
ground for a review, it shall reject the application.
Application where Granted
Rule 4 (2) provides that where the Court is of opinion that the application for
review should be granted, it shall grant the same:
Provided that-
(a) no such application shall be granted without previous notice to the opposite party, to
enable him to appear and be heard in support of the decree or order, a review of which
is applied for; and
(b) no such application shall be granted on the ground of discovery of new matter or
evidence which the applicant alleges was not within his knowledge, or could not be
adduced by him when the decree or order was passed or made, without strict proof of
such allegation.
Application for Review in Court Consisting of two or more Judges
R.5 provides that where the judge or judges, or any one of the judges, who
passed the decree or made the order, a review of which is applied for, continues or
continue attached to the Court at the time when the application for a review is
presented, and is not or are not precluded by absence or other cause for a period of
next six months next after the application from considering the decree or order to which
the application refers, such Judge or Judges or any of them shall hear the application.
(a) Provided that in an application for review of any Judgment or Order in the
High Court where the Judgment or Order has been passed by a single Judge, by the
same Judge if he is available and if he is not available or is otherwise precluded from
hearing the application, it may be heard by another Judge nominated by the Chief
Justice for the purpose.
(b) provided further that where the Judgment or Order has been passed by a
Division Bench or Full Bench, it shall be heard by the same Bench if all the Judges are
available, and if all or any of the Judges are not available or are otherwise precluded
from hearing the application, by a Bench constituted by the Chief Justice for the
purpose, which shall be equal in strength to that which passed the Judgment or Order
sought to be reviewed and of which, the available Judge or Judges of that Bench shall
be members.
In Narayanan v. Raman
422
, it was held that the prohibition contained in R.5 of
O.47 of CPC comes into operation only in cases where all or any of the Judges who
passed the decree or order sought to be reviewed continued attached to the Court at the
time when the application for review of such decree or order was presented and were
not or was not precluded by absence or other cause during the next six months period
from hearing such appeal.
In R. Veerakumar v. The Trivandrum Permanent Bank Ltd.
423
, it was held that
where decree was passed by two Judges and one of them is present and other is absent
the petition for review has to be heard when the other Judge returns cannot be heard
by one of the Judges alone.
In State v. Ponnan and Other
424
, it was held that Judges who passed the
judgment attached to Court for six months from filing of review application and not
precluded from hearing it review cannot be heard by Judges who had not passed the
judgment.
Application where Rejected
R.6 (1) provides that where the application for a review is heard by more than
one Judge and the Court is equally divided, the application shall be rejected.
422
1953 KLT 216.
423
1972 KLT 347.
424
1952 (2) KLT 382.
R.6 (2) provides that where there is a majority, the decision shall be according
to the opinion of the majority.
Order of Rejection not Appealable
Rule 7 (1) provides that an order of the court rejecting the application shall not
be appealable; but an order granting an application may be objected to at once, by an
appeal from the decree or order finally passed or made in the suit.
Rule 7 (2) provides that where the application has been rejected on failure of the
applicant to appear, and where sufficient cause is proved to the satisfaction of the
court for the non appearance, the court may order the rejected application to be restored
to file.
Rule 7 (3) provides that no order shall be made under Sub-rule (2) unless notice
of the application has been served on the opposite party.
Bar of Certain Applications
Rule 9 provides that no application to review an order made on an application
for a review or a decree or order passed or made on a review shall be entertained.
Section 114 and Order XLVII provide an avenue for parties to seek a review when
they believe that a judgment or order contains errors that need rectification. This helps
in upholding the principles of justice and fairness. Reviews can be sought to clarify
points of law or to address ambiguities in judgments, contributing to the development
of legal principles. These provisions ensure that parties have a mechanism to address
grievances when no further appeal is available, thereby promoting access to justice.
Section 114 and Order XLVII of the CPC are essential components of the Indian legal
system that allow for the review of judgments and orders in civil cases. They serve as
a mechanism to correct errors, clarify legal issues, and provide parties with an
opportunity to seek justice when no further appeal is possible.
These provisions ensure that parties have access to a multi-tiered judicial system,
allowing them to challenge decisions they believe are erroneous or unjust. Reference
to higher courts and review processes serve to clarify legal issues and ensure
consistency in the application of law. Remand of cases allows for the correction of
procedural errors or the consideration of additional evidence, enhancing the fairness
of the legal process. While appeals and reviews provide opportunities for
reconsideration, they also contribute to the finality of legal decisions by allowing for
comprehensive examination and redressal of grievances. Sections 96 to 109 and Order
XLI to XLVII of the CPC establish procedures for appeals, reference to higher courts,
review of judgments, and remand of cases. These processes are essential for upholding
justice, ensuring fairness, and providing parties with avenues for seeking legal
redressal and clarification in civil cases.
TOPIC 39
LODGING OF CAVEAT (Section 148A & Order LIV)
The lodging of a caveat is an important provision under the Code of Civil
Procedure, 1908 (CPC). It is governed primarily by Section 148A of the CPC and is
also associated with Order LIV of the CPC. Section 148A of the CPC deals with
caveats. A caveat is a legal notice filed by a person with the court to prevent an ex
parte order or decree from being passed against them without notice and an opportunity
to be heard.
The primary purpose of lodging a caveat is to ensure that if any party intends to initiate
legal proceedings that may affect the person who lodged the caveat, that party must
provide prior notice to the caveator (the person who lodged the caveat). To lodge a
caveat, a person files a formal caveat petition or notice in the appropriate court. The
caveat contains details about the case, the parties involved, and the grounds for lodging
the caveat. It is essential to follow the prescribed format and procedure for lodging a
caveat.
Once a caveat is lodged, if any party initiates proceedings that may affect the caveator's
interests, the court is required to give notice to the caveator. This notice ensures that
the caveator has an opportunity to appear before the court and present their case. A
caveat remains in force for a specific period, usually 90 days, after which it can be
extended by the caveator. It is essential to keep the caveat up to date to ensure
continued protection.
Provisions regarding the right to lodge a caveat and rules regulating lodging of caveats
are contained in S.148A and Order LIV of CPC. S.148A (1) and O.LIV Rule 1 provides
that any person claiming a right to appear before the court on the hearing of an
application which is expected to be made or has been made in a suit, appeal, revision
or any proceeding, instituted or about to be instituted in a court to which the Code
applies, may lodge a caveat in the court.
425
Order LIV of the CPC provides further details and rules regarding caveats. It lays down
the specific procedure for lodging and maintaining caveats in civil cases. Order LIV
specifies the form in which a caveat should be lodged. It includes details such as the
cause title, the grounds for lodging the caveat, and the relief sought. The order provides
for the extension of caveats beyond the initial 90-day period. A caveator can apply for
an extension if they believe their interests are still at risk. The order also addresses the
procedure for withdrawing a caveat. A caveator can withdraw a caveat by filing a
formal application to the court.
O.LIV Rule 3 provides that as soon as a person lodges a caveat, an entry shall
be made in the Register of Caveats in the presence of the Caveator himself or the
pleader who shall sign the register.
O.LIV Rule 4 and S.148A (2) provides that where a caveat has been lodged
under sub-section (1), the person by whom the caveat has been lodged
426
shall serve a
notice of the caveat by registered post, acknowledgment due, on the person by whom
the application has been, or is expected to be, made under sub-section (1).
425
The caveat shall be accompanied by-(a) as many copies of the notice of caveat as will be required to
be served on the applicant;
(b) the court fee prescribed for the caveat and;
(c) the fees prescribed for service of such notice of caveat.
426
hereinafter referred to as the caveator.
O.LIV Rule 5 and S.148A (3) provides that where, after a caveat has been lodged
under sub-section (1), any application is filed in any suit or proceeding, the Court shall
serve a notice of the application on the caveator.
O.LIV Rule 6 provides that the appointment of an Advocate by Caveator under
R.4 of O.III will be sufficient for the suit, appeal or proceedings in relation to which
application is expected, provided the same is filed caveat remains in force. An
endorsement to that effect showing the details of the appointment including the name
of the Advocate and the address for service shall be made by Chief Ministerial Officer
of the court on the plaint, appeal or proceeding.
S.148A (4) provides that where a notice of any caveat has been served on the
applicant, he shall forthwith furnish the caveator, at the caveator’s expense, with a
copy of the application made by him and also with copies of any paper or document
which has been, or may be, filed by him in support of the application.
S.148A (5) provides that where a caveat has been lodged under sub-section (1),
such caveat shall not remain in force after the expiry of ninety days from the date on
which it was lodged unless the application referred to in sub-section (1) has been made
before the expiry of the said period.
In Moideen v. Kadeesa Umma
427
, it was held that when the caveator claims
independent possession on the basis of oral lease and claiming that they cannot be
dispossessed in execution, caveat is not maintainable. As such, an application under
S.148A is not maintainable. His remedy is to file application under O.21 R.99.
In Sudhakaran v. Thankamma
428
, it was held that the Court should see that the
office maintains a register for every caveat lodged.
In Virotex Cables v. TICC ltd
429
, it was held that application for lodging caveat
by an industrial concern against corporation is not maintainable.
427
1991 (1) KLT SN 57.
428
1988 (1) KLT 545.
429
1990 (2) KLT SN 74.
Caveats are significant because they serve as a protective measure for individuals and
entities who anticipate that legal proceedings may be initiated against them. By lodging
a caveat, they ensure that they are not caught off guard by ex parte orders or decrees,
and they have an opportunity to defend their interests in court. Section 148A and Order
LIV of the CPC provide the legal framework for lodging caveats in civil cases in India.
These provisions help safeguard the rights of individuals and entities by ensuring that
they are informed and have a chance to be heard when legal proceedings that may
affect them are initiated.
TOPIC 40
INHERENT POWER OF CIVIL COURT (Section 151)
The purpose of judiciary is to secure justice to all. Assuming that, there are no
specific provisions in the Code to confer justice quickly, the civil court can exercise
its inherent jurisdiction. Section 151 of the Code of Civil Procedure, 1908 (CPC), deals
with the inherent power of civil courts in India. This section grants the courts inherent
powers to make orders and pass judgments necessary for the ends of justice, even when
such powers are not expressly provided for in the CPC.
Section 151 of the CPC reads as follows:
"Nothing in this Code shall be deemed to limit or otherwise affect the inherent power
of the Court to make such orders as may be necessary for the ends of justice or to
prevent abuse of the process of the Court."
Sec.151 of the Code lays down that nothing in this Code shall be deemed to
limit or otherwise affect the inherent power of the court to make such orders as may
be necessary for the ends of justice or to prevent the abuse of the process of court.
They are complimentary to those powers and the court is free to exercise them for the
ends of justice or to prevent the abuse of the process of the court. It is a power inherent
in the court by virtue of its duty to do justice between the parties before it. Thus, this
power is necessary in the interest of justice.
In Manoharlal v. Seth Hiralal
430
, the SC observed that the inherent power has
not been conferred on the court; it is a power inherent in the court.
Similarly these powers are to be exercised by the Court in very exceptional
circumstances for which Code lays down no procedure.
431
That is remedy provided elsewhere in the Code bars application of powers under
S.151.
432
Such matters give rise to necessary implication that no power shall be
exercised in respect of the said matter otherwise than in the matter prescribed by the
said provisions.
433
Though there are limitations on the powers of the court, it cannot abandon its
inherent powers under S.151. The inherent power has its roots in necessity and its
breadth is co-extensive with necessities.
434
The exercise of inherent powers of the court
must depend solely on the facts and circumstances of each case.
435
In Ram Chand v. Kanyalal
436
, the Apex Court laid down the following principle
regarding the ambit and scope of Section 151:
“The inherent power of a court is in addition to and complimentary to the powers
expressly conferred under the Code. But that power will not be exercised if its exercise
is inconsistent with, or comes into conflict with any of the powers expressly or by
necessary implication conferred by the other provisions of the Code. If there are
express provisions exhaustively covering a particular matter, they give rise to a
necessary implication that no power shall be exercised in respect of the said matter
otherwise than in the manner prescribed by the said provisions. Whatever limitations
are imposed by construction on the provision of Section 151 of the Code, they do not
430
AIR 1962 S.C. 527.
431
Ramakarandas v. Bhagwandas, AIR 1965 SC 1144. However it had also been laid down that power
can be exercised even if there is another specific provision in the Code authorizing an order, such as
one which is sought under S.151., Manoharlal v. Seth Hiralal, AIR 1962 SC 527.
432
Nainsingh v. Koonwarjee, AIR 1970 SC 997.
433
Power has to be exercised by the Court in very exceptional circumstances for which Code lays down
no procedure. Ramakarandas v. Bhagwandas, AIR 1965 SC 1144.
434
Mathai v. Vargheese, 1995 (1) KLJ 795.
435
Kochu Varied v. Kasim, AIR 1960 Ker.342.
436
AIR 1966 SC 1899.
control the undoubted power of the court conferred under S. 151 of the Code to make
a suitable order to prevent the abuse of the process of the court”.
Thus we can see that inherent powers are very necessary to protect the interest
of justice when the law does not provide for the circumstances. Even it was held that
law of limitation does not affect the exercise of inherent power.
437
Similarly an order
of restitution under S.151 is not appealable.
438
Inherent Powers When can be Exercised?
1. Power of restitution is not confined to S.144. Court can order restitution by
virtue of its inherent powers.
439
2. Objectionable remarks made against a third party in the judgment may be corrected
at the instance of such an aggrieved party under the inherent power of the court.
3. S. 151 is applicable to prevent abuse of process of Court.
440
4. The court can grant stay under S.151 even where S.10 of the Code is not attracted.
5. A court of Appeal may grant interim stay of execution even before the
admission of the appeal when thee application under S. 5 of the Limitation Act is
pending.
6. Application in other Cases
Case dismissed for default can be restored under S. 151.
441
7. Interim maintenance can be awarded when the claim for maintenance is not much
contested.
437
Thoma v. Parameswara Panikar, 1955 KLT 870.
438
Subramania Iyer v. Damodharan Potti, 1963 KLT 531.
439
K.N. Krishnnappa v. T. R. G. Shetty, 1997 SC Kant.152.
440
Ram Chand and Sons Sugar Mills v. kanhayalal, 1966 (2) SCJ 731.
441
Rani Choudhury v. Suraj Jit Choudhury , AIR 1982 Sc 1397 at 1400.
8. The court can dismiss a suit under S.151 CPC on account of non- compliance with
court order.
9. Balance Court Fee
Under the inherent powers of the Court, Courts can restore a suit dismissed for
non-payment of balance court fee.
442
10. Court has inherent power to extend the time fixed for payment of deficit court fee
even after a conditional order on a petition for that purpose.
443
11. Where the suit is dismissed erroneously due to inadvertence inherent power can be
invoked to restore it.
12. Execution
The inherent power under S. 151 can be exercised by an execution court.
444
13. Court can exercise inherent jurisdiction to restore an application in execution
proceedings dismissed for default.
445
14. An amendment of the execution petition can also be granted under Sec.151 of the
Code.
15. Clerical Mistakes
Inherent power can be exercised to correct clerical mistakes accidental slips or
errors or omissions in judgment under Art. 226 of the Constitution.
446
16. Consolidation of Suits
442
Varghesev. Devi Academy, AIR 1999 Ker.185.
443
Janaki Amma v. Krishnan, 1978 KLN SN 29.
444
Dohara Beevi v. Bhaskaran, AIR 1990 NOC 30.
445
Thoma v. Parameswara Panikar, 1955 KLT 870.
446
Kokers 70 MM Movie House v. KSEB, 1984 KLJ 392.
The Court has got ample jurisdiction in proper circumstances to consolidate suits
when a common question has to be decided.
447
17. Can be invoked to order security for costs in a proper revision application.
18. For staying cross-suits on account of convenience.
19. In cases where a party who deliberately disobeys the orders of the Court, the Court
has power to strike off the defence.
448
20. A compromise decree can be amended under inherent power to make it consistent
with the agreement of the parties.
21. Amendment of Decree
Errors from accidental slip either in decree or judgment can be corrected.
449
22. Criminal Procedure Code
Where the order of court is violated it is competent for the court to invoke its
inherent jurisdiction under S. 151 to restore the property to original position.
450
23. Inherent Power to Render Police Aid
The executing Court has inherent power to render police aid to the Amin to
effect delivery of possession of property if there is any likelihood of breach of peace.
451
24. Attachment before Judgment
If a third party is aggrieved by an order of attachment before judgment, he can
move the Court for inquiry into his claim by invoking S. 151, before attachment is
affected.
452
447
Philip v. Bata Co. Shoe Ltd and Another, 1959 KLJ 999.
448
Parukutty Amma v. thankamma Amma, 1988 (1) KLJ 793.
449
Samarendra v. Krishna Kumar, 1967 (2) SCR 18.
450
Abraham v. Kuriyakkose, 1994 (1) KLJ 918.
451
Moidu v. Parthasarathy and Others, 1991 (1) KLJ 497.
452
G.K.Prabhakaran & Co. v. David Traders, 1972 KLR 377.
25. To hold trial or part of it, in camera if satisfied that the end of justice required such
a course.
26. Claim for Arrears of Sales Tax
When state claims priority for arrears of sales tax from debtor against when
money decrees were obtained by other claim can be granted on application under
S.151.
453
27. When auction sale is set aside under Section 47 Cr.P.C., the executing court can
under its inherent power grant interest in the purchase money.
28. The court has inherent power to set aside the order obtained by fraud practiced
upon it.
454
29. When the Court finds that in disobedience of order a compound wall had been put
up, it can direct demolition.
455
30. Restitution
Ex pate decree is set aside under O. 9 R.13. Restitution can be granted under
S.151.
456
31. Though S.144 of CPC may not in terms apply to restitution sought by the
petitioners, the court can in exercise of inherent power give relief to the petitioners.
457
32. Return of Amount Paid under Protest
There is no specific provision in CPC empowering the execution court to pass
an order for the return of amount paid under protest to avert an attachment or for the
453
State of Kerala v. E.P. Mathew, AIR 1961 Ker.
454
Chakki Amma v. Mammen, AIR 1956 TC 87.
455
Krishnan v. Joseph Desouza, AIR 1986 Ker. 63.
456
Garuda v. Dhana, AIR 1989 Ori.103.
457
Beeravu v. Kathiyamma and Others, AIR 1973 Ker.226.
cancellation of the order for attachment before making the attachment. The Court can
exercise powers under S.151 under such circumstance.
458
33. Suit Dismissed for Default and Restoration Petition also Dismissed for Default
Petition to restore the restoration petition filed under S.151 is maintainable.
459
34. Wrong Decree
When a court passes a wrong decree in exercise of judicial discretion and no
appeal, revision or review is filed, party cannot approach the court under S.151.
460
When inherent powers cannot be exercised?
1. Commission Application
Application for issue of commission under S.151 cannot be invoked.
461
2. Temporary Injunction
Inherent powers of court cannot be invoked to grant temporary injunction.
462
3. Power under S. 151 cannot be exercised if its exercise is inconsistent with or comes
into conflict with any of the powers expressly or by necessary implication conferred
by other provisions of the Code.
463
4. S. 151 cannot be invoked for stay of suits. Power under S.151 cannot be invoked for
stay of subsequent suit.
464
458
Kamalashy Amma v. Ouseph, 1978 KLT 146.
459
Manoharan v. Ezhome Grama Panchayat, ILR 2001 (2) Ker.530.
460
Velayudhan Nair v. Kerala K.Y. Kuries Pvt. Ltd, AIR 1988 Ker.223.
461
Asanand Nanak Chand Aggarval v. C. A. Ayyathurai, AIR 1956 TC 260.
462
T.C. Kunhukuttan Nair v. Subakumaran, AIR 1959 Ker.45.
463
Elsy Johny v. Kereala Vijaya Kuries and Loans, 1995
(2) KLT SN 8; Manohar Lal v. Seth Hirilal, AIR 1962 SC 527,533; Minocher Behranji v. Hema, AIR
1982 Bom.151, 155-156.
464
Kora Chacko v. Mathew, 1995 (2) KLJ 616.
5. Inherent power cannot prevail over statute.
465
6. Decree regarding compensation under Land Acquisition Act becoming final,
executing or reference Court cannot amend decree exercising power of review.
466
7. Rejection of the Plaint under O. 7 R. 11 (c)
Plaintiff is not entitled to invoke the jurisdiction of the Court under S.151 when
a plaint gets rejected in terms of O.7 R.11 and when he has already approached the
Appellate Court with an appeal.
467
8. Restoration Petition
When petition for restoration of appeal dismissed for default for non-payment
of balance Court fee payable under second proviso to S.52 of Court Fees and Suits
Valuation Act, invoking S.151 is not maintainable.
468
9. Inherent jurisdiction cannot be exercised where result would be the nullification of
the procedure prescribed by the Code.
469
10. Correction of Decree
The decree cannot be corrected under S.151 of CPC exercising inherent
powers.
470
11. Defects on Merits
Defects on merits in the judgment cannot be rectified invoking the section.
471
465
Manohar Lal v. Seth Hirilal, AIR 1962 SC 527,533.
466
Bai Shakriben v. Special Land Acquisition officer, AIR 1996 SC 3323.
467
Mable v. Dolores, AIR 2001 Ker.353.
468
Gopalan Nair v. Bhaskaran, 2002 (1) KLJ 1.
469
P.A. Ahammed v. FCI, 1999 (7) SCC 39.
470
Rachael v. George, 1984 KLT SN 75.
471
Patti Amma v. Raman Nair, AIR 1962 Ker.6.
12. Discretion to be Cautiously Exercised
Inherent power of the Court is not intended for condonation of latches or
negligence.
472
13. No Exercise of Power
Court cannot order seizure of account books of a party or appoint a
Commissioner for seizure.
473
14. Stay of proceedings
No power to stay proceedings pending in Criminal Courts.
474
Section 151 recognizes the inherent or residual power of civil courts. It implies that
the provisions of the CPC are not exhaustive, and the courts have the authority to
exercise their inherent powers when the specific provisions of the CPC do not provide
for a particular situation. The primary purpose of Section 151 is to ensure that courts
can do justice in a broader sense. This means that if a situation arises where the strict
application of the CPC may lead to an injustice or prevent justice from being served,
the court can invoke its inherent powers to rectify the situation.
Another significant aspect of Section 151 is its role in preventing the abuse of the
court's process. If a party's actions are deemed to be frivolous, vexatious, or an abuse
of the legal process, the court can use its inherent powers to curtail such abuse. The
inherent power conferred by Section 151 is broad and discretionary. It allows the court
to take any action it deems necessary in the interest of justice, provided it is exercised
judiciously and not arbitrarily.
The Application of of Inherent Powers under Section 151 has critical role that, If a
party wishes to amend its pleadings to rectify a mistake or omission, and such an
472
Fokkier Kochu Thampi v. Uthaman, 1959 KLR 861.
473
Padam Sen v. State of U.P., 1961 (1) SCR 884.
474
State v. Forest Range Officer, 1959 KLR 1090.
amendment is not expressly allowed under the CPC, the court can use its inherent
powers to permit the amendment if it is necessary for the ends of justice. In certain
circumstances, the court may extend the time for filing documents or submissions if
the delay is due to genuine reasons and not an attempt to abuse the process of the court.
If multiple suits involve common questions of law or fact, and their consolidation
would serve the interests of justice and judicial economy, the court can use its inherent
powers to consolidate the suits.
When a court needs assistance in obtaining evidence or inspecting property, it can
appoint a local commissioner, even if the CPC does not explicitly provide for such
appointments. Section 151 of the CPC grants civil courts in India the inherent power
to make orders and take actions that are necessary for the ends of justice and to prevent
the abuse of the court's process. This provision ensures flexibility and adaptability in
the judicial process, allowing courts to address unforeseen situations and uphold the
principles of justice and fairness.
TOPIC 41
FOREIGN JUDGMENT (Sections 13 and 14)
Section 13 and 14 enacts a rule of Res judicata in case of foreign judgments.
These provisions embody the principle of Private International law that a judgment
delivered by a foreign court of competent jurisdiction can be enforced by an Indian
court and will operate as Res-judicata between the parties thereto.
Foreign court is defined as a court situated outside India and not established or
continued by the authority of the Central Govt.
475
475
Sec.2 (5).
Sections 13 and 14 of the Code of Civil Procedure,deal with the recognition and
enforcement of foreign judgments in India. These provisions are crucial for
determining the legal status and enforceability of judgments obtained in foreign
countries. Section 13 of the CPC lays down the general rule that a foreign judgment
shall not be conclusive in India. This means that a judgment passed by a foreign court
does not automatically have the same effect as a judgment of an Indian court. Instead,
it may be subject to examination and scrutiny by Indian courts under certain
conditions. Here are the key points: Section 13 provides conditions under which a
foreign judgment may be recognized and enforced in India. These conditions include
that the judgment must be passed by a court of competent jurisdiction and must not be
obtained by fraud, must not be contrary to Indian law, and must not be based on a
breach of any Indian law.
Even if a foreign judgment meets the conditions mentioned in Section 13, it does not
operate as res judicata (i.e., a matter already judged) in subsequent proceedings in
India. It can be treated as evidence of a right, title, or fact, but the court is not bound
by it. It is important to note that the burden of proving that the foreign judgment fulfills
the conditions specified in Section 13 lies on the party seeking to rely on that judgment.
Section 14 of the CPC deals with the presumption of foreign judgments. It states that
a foreign judgment, which is based on a right conferred by a foreign law, is presumed
to be conclusive evidence of that right. Section 14 establishes a presumption of
conclusiveness regarding the rights established by a foreign judgment. This means that
the rights determined by the foreign judgment will generally be accepted as valid
unless proven otherwise. While there is a presumption of conclusiveness, this
presumption can be rebutted by showing that the foreign judgment does not fulfill the
conditions mentioned in Section 13 or that it is not based on a right conferred by
foreign law.
Thus the courts in England, U.S.A., Canada etc are foreign courts. The Privy
Council which was not a foreign court prior to the independence is a foreign court now.
The general rule is that an Indian court will apply only Indian laws. A foreign
judgment may be enforced by proceedings in execution only. S.44A of the Code relates
to execution of a foreign judgment. A foreign judgment will not be blindly followed
in India. It must be a final judgment and conclusive.
Foreign judgment of a foreign court is enforced on the principle that where a
court of competent jurisdiction has adjudicated upon a claim, a legal obligation arises
to satisfy that claim.
The Rules of Private International laws of each state is different but by the
comity of nations, certain Rules are recognized as common to civilized jurisdiction
and hence the court must consider a foreign judgment as obligatory to enforce it to a
great extent for the interest of justice.
The foreign judgment theory has importance for the following three purposes:
1. A foreign judgment may be enforceable.
2. A foreign judgment may be admitted as evidence.
3. A foreign judgment acts as Res judicata.
To be enforceable or admissible and for operating as Res judicata, such foreign
judgments must be conclusive. The conclusive nature of foreign judgment is provided
in section 13. A foreign judgment is not conclusive if one of the conditions specified
in clauses (a) to (f) of section 13 is satisfied.
a) where it has been not pronounced by a court of competent jurisdiction;
b) where it has not been given on the merits of the case;
c) where it appears on the face of the proceedings to be founded on an incorrect view
of international law or a refusal to recognize the law of India in cases in which such
law is applicable;
d) Where the proceedings in which the judgment was obtained are opposed to natural
justice;
e) Where it has been obtained by fraud;
f) Where it sustains a claim founded on a breach of any law in force in India.
In Gurdas Mann v. Mohinder Singh Brarr,
476
a foreign judgment was passed
based on mere pleadings in an exparte decree. Held it is not executable in India.
476
AIR 1993 P&H 92: 1993 Pun L.J.183:1993 (2) Land L. R. 385.
In Gurdayal v. Raja Faridkot
477
A sued B in the court for Faridkot, a former
Indian state. The claim was for Rs. 60,000/. Alleged to have been misappropriated by
B while in A,s service at Faridkot. B did not appear at the hearing. An exparte decree
was passed against him. B was a native of another Indian state Sind. In 1869 he left
Sind and went to Faridkot to take up service under A. In 1874 he left A’s service and
returned to Sind. The suit was brought against him in 1879. At the date of the suit is
neither resided in Faridkot nor was he a domiciled subject of Faridkot state nor did he
owe allegiance to that state. On these facts the Faridkot court had on general principles
of International Law no jurisdiction to entertain the suit. The decision was upheld by
the Privy Council.
Therefore, a foreign court cannot assume jurisdiction in cases where the claim
is a personal one merely because the cause of action arose within its jurisdiction. But
if B was residing at Faridkot at the date of the suit, the Faridkot court would have had
complete jurisdiction. In the case of personal claims, it is the residence at the time
when the action began that gives jurisdiction in a suit to the foreign court.
In Satya v. Teja Singh
478
, the S.C. refused to recognize a decree obtained in
Nevada court by a husband against the wife who at the relevant time was in India. The
wife brought an action for maintenance against the husband who in defence held that
a decree of divorce obtained by him in Nevada court against his wife. The S C held
that neither the husband nor the wife having not been a resident within the jurisdiction
of court at Nevada, the said court’s decree cannot be recognized in India. According
to Private international Law, an exparte decree of a foreign court is a nullity, if the
party against whom a decree is passed does not appear at all and does not take part in
the proceedings of the court. (On the other hand a person who appears in obedience to
a foreign court and allies leave to defend must be held to have voluntarily submitted
the jurisdiction of a court.)
477
1895 Calcutta 222.
478
AIR 1975 SC.
Sections 13 and 14 of the CPC provide the legal framework for dealing with foreign
judgments in India. These provisions ensure that foreign judgments are not
automatically recognized and enforced but are subject to certain conditions and
safeguards. Indian courts will examine foreign judgments to determine their validity
and relevance in Indian legal proceedings, all while upholding the principles of justice
and fairness.
TOPIC 42
MESNE PROFIT [Section 2(12)]
The term "mesne profits" is defined in Section 2(12) of the CPC. Mesne profits are an
important legal concept related to suits for possession of immovable property. Section
2(12) of the CPC defines mesne profits as: "Mesne profits" of property means those
profits which the person in wrongful possession of such property actually received or
might with ordinary diligence have received therefrom, together with interest on such
profits, but shall not include profits due to improvements made by the person in
wrongful possession."
Mesne profits refer to the income or gains that a person wrongfully in possession of
someone else's immovable property earns during the period of such wrongful
possession. It includes the actual profits received by the wrongful possessor and the
profits they could have earned with ordinary diligence. Mesne profits may also include
interest on these profits. However, any profits resulting from improvements made by
the wrongful possessor are not considered mesne profits.
Mesne profits serve as an important component in cases where a party seeks possession
of immovable property. When a person is wrongfully dispossessed of their property
and later seeks possession through a legal action, they may also claim mesne profits
for the period during which they were wrongfully deprived of the property. This serves
as compensation for the loss suffered. Mesne profits are often a subject of dispute in
property-related litigation. The court must determine the amount of mesne profits
owed to the rightful owner based on the actual profits received or those that could have
been received with ordinary diligence. Mesne profits can also include an interest
component to compensate for the delay in the restoration of the property to its rightful
owner.
The definition of mesne profits explicitly excludes profits due to improvements made
by the person in wrongful possession. This ensures that any improvements made by
the wrongful possessor are not considered part of the mesne profits payable to the
rightful owner. By virtue of Section 2(12) of the Code, Mesne Profit of property means
those profits which the person in wrongful possession of such property actually
received or might with ordinary diligence have received therefrom, together with
interest on such profit, but shall not include profits due to improvement made by the
person in wrongful possession.
Every person has a right to the possession of his property and when he is
deprived of such a right by another person, he is not only entitled to receive back
possession of that property, but also the damages for the wrongful possession from that
person. The Mesne Profit is considered as a compensation which is penal in nature.
In Marshallsons & Co. v. Sahi Oretrans
479
, it was held that the object of
awarding a decree for mesne profit is to compensate the person who has been kept out
of possession, even though he was entitled to possession thereof. Wrongful possession
of the defendant is the essence of claim for a mesne profit. Mesne profit being in the
nature of damages, no invariable rule governing their award and assessment in every
case can be laid down, and the court may mould it according to the justice of the case.
Mesne profits, as defined in Section 2(12) of the CPC, are a crucial aspect of property-
related litigation. They represent the compensation owed to the rightful owner for the
income lost during the period of wrongful possession of their property. Determining
mesne profits is an important legal process that allows for the fair resolution of
property disputes.
479
1999 (2) SCC 325.
TOPIC 43
LEGAL REPRESENTATIVE
Section 2 (11) of the Code defines the expression “legal representative”.
Legal representative is a person who in law represents the estate of a deceased
person. In the context of the Code of Civil Procedure, 1908 (CPC), a legal
representative plays a vital role in civil litigation. A legal representative is a person
who steps into the shoes of a deceased party or a party under a legal disability (such as
a minor or a person of unsound mind) and continues or defends a lawsuit on their
behalf.
Role of a Legal Representative:
Representation of Deceased Parties: If a party to a civil suit dies during the course of
litigation, their legal representative takes over the case. This ensures that the litigation
is not extinguished due to the death of a party and that the deceased party's rights and
claims are still adjudicated upon.
Representation of Parties Under Legal Disability: When a party to a suit is a minor, a
person of unsound mind, or otherwise under a legal disability, they typically cannot
act on their own behalf in court. In such cases, a guardian or next friend is appointed
to represent their interests and advance their claims.
Legal representative includes-
(1) Any person who intermeddles with the estate of the deceased.
(2) If a party sues or is sued in a representative character the person on whom the estate
devolves on the death of the party so suing or sued.
As per the definition, to be legal representative it is not necessary that he must
have beneficial interest in the estate. Administrators and executors do not have any
beneficial interest in the estate, yet they are legal representatives.
Appointment of Legal Representatives:
The appointment of a legal representative is typically governed by the following
principles under the CPC:
When a party to a suit dies, the court may order the legal representative of the deceased
to be brought on record. The legal representative is usually the executor of the
deceased's estate, an administrator appointed by the court, or any person who may
succeed to the interest of the deceased party.
In the case of a minor party, the court appoints a guardian ad litem to represent the
minor's interests. This guardian may be a natural guardian, testamentary guardian, or
a guardian appointed by the court.
When a party is a person of unsound mind, the court may appoint a next friend to
represent them in the litigation. The next friend is typically someone who takes on the
responsibility of acting in the person's best interest.
Liabilities and Rights of Legal Representatives:
Legal representatives, whether representing a deceased party or someone under a legal
disability, have certain responsibilities and rights such as Legal representatives are
liable for the acts or omissions of the deceased or incapacitated party to the extent of
the assets they have inherited or are administering. They step into the legal shoes of
the party they represent. Legal representatives have the right to continue or defend the
ongoing litigation, including filing pleadings, leading evidence, and making arguments
on behalf of the party they represent.
The term legal representative does not mean a real owner of the estate or a legal heir.
An intermediary is a person who has got an interest to represent the estate. He is not
trespasser, but he assumes representative capacity in relation to the estate.
Legatees under the will are legal representatives, but a trespasser into the
property of the deceased or an official receiver is not a legal representative.
In Janardhanan Pillai v. Kochunarayani Amma
480
, it was held that when there
is a conflict of interest between co-defendants and when one of the co-defendants
supported the case of the plaintiff who lost the suit it would operate as res judicata.
In Mercy v. Aisha Ummal
481
, it was held that legal heirs are persons who in law
represent the estate of the deceased where as legal representatives are persons who in
law represent the estate of the deceased or who intermeddles with the same. Where
deceased had no right over the estate, no right to sue survives and no question of
impleading arises as nobody could represent his estate. Legal heirs may be legal
representatives, but not always. Legal heirs are entitled to inherit the estate of the
deceased. Legal representatives on the other hand are persons who in law represent the
estate of a deceased person.
In Chiranjilal Shrilal Geonka v. Jasit Singh
482
, the Court held that an executor
of a will of deceased testator is a legal representative.
In Sarada v. Chakkunny
483
, it was held that a legal representative is a person
who in law represents the estate of a deceased person. Although in its strictest sense
the meaning of legal representative was limited to executors and administrators only,
it has now been so extended as to include heirs of the deceased. Therefore a person on
whom the estate of the deceased devolves would be his legal representative.
480
ILR 1976 (1) Ker.489.
481
1987 (2) KLT 166; 1987 KLJ 776.
482
1993 (2) SCC 507.
483
AIR 1992 Ker.249.
In Andhra Bank v. Srinivasan
484
, and Custodian of Branches of BANCO v.
Nalini
485
, it was held that an intermeddler of the estate of the deceased is also a legal
representative.
In Official Liquidator v. Parthasarathi Sinha
486
, it was held that misfeasance
proceedings under S.543 of the Companies Act can be continued against legal
representatives and heirs of the director of a Company who died during the pendency
of proceedings.
In Shankarappa v. Daniel
487
, it was held that a legatee of a part of estate is a
legal representative.
In Krishna Singh v. Mathura Ahir
488
, a mohant instituted a suit for possession of
muth property. On his death another mohant succeeded. It was held that he is the legal
representative of the deceased mohant.
In Dayaram v. Shyam Sundari
489
, it was held that the estate of a debtor will be
bound by the result of a suit which a creditor brings against some heirs of a deceased
debtor if the former acted after due inquiry and under a bonafide belief that the persons
brought on record were the legal representatives of the said deceased.
In Andhra Bank v. Srinivasan
490
, it was held that a legatee, who obtains only a
part of the estate of the deceased, is a legal representative because ‘estate’ does not
mean whole of the estate.
In Andhra bank v. Srinivasan
491
, it was held that a person who represents the
estate of a deceased is a legal representative. He need not represent the whole estate.
He remains a legal representative if he represents part of the estate.
484
AIR 1962 SC 232.
485
AIR 1989 SC 1589.
486
AIR 1983 SC 188, 194.
487
1962 (2) Mys. LJ 124.
488
AIR 1980 SC 707.
489
AIR 1965 SC 1049.
490
AIR 1962 SC 232, 239.
491
AIR 1962 SC 232.
In Andhra bank v. Srinivasan
492
, it was held that the person who is in possession
of the estate of the deceased is a legal representative.
In Davis Mookken v. Thomakutty
493
, it was held that an appointment or
nomination of a successor by the predecessor if invalid and followed by a possession
of the estate or part thereof is sufficient to constitute the nominee a legal representative.
Legal representatives play a crucial role in ensuring that the interests of
deceased parties or parties under legal disabilities are adequately represented in civil
litigation. This mechanism helps maintain the integrity of the legal process and ensures
that the rights and claims of such parties are not left unaddressed due to their absence
or incapacity.
492
AIR 1962 SC 232.
493
ILR 1974 (1) Ker.289: AIR 1975 Ker.163.